Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n according_a faith_n rule_n 3,567 5 6.8625 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A64127 The second part of the dissuasive from popery in vindication of the first part, and further reproof and conviction of the Roman errors / by Jer. Taylor ...; Dissuasive from popery. Part 2 Taylor, Jeremy, 1613-1667. 1667 (1667) Wing T390; ESTC R1530 392,947 536

There are 39 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

word_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o apostle_n creed_n for_o a_o sufficient_a rule_n of_o their_o faith_n but_o be_v threaten_v with_o damnation_n if_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v whatever_o their_o church_n have_v determine_v and_o yet_o they_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v know_v it_o but_o by_o the_o word_n of_o their_o parish_n priest_n or_o confessor_n it_o lie_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o every_o parish_n priest_n to_o make_v the_o people_n believe_v any_o thing_n and_o be_v of_o any_o religion_n and_o trust_v to_o any_o article_n as_o they_o shall_v choose_v and_o find_v to_o their_o purpose_n the_o council_n of_o trent_n require_v tradition_n to_o be_v add_v and_o receive_v equal_a with_o scripture_n they_o both_o not_o single_o but_o in_o conjunction_n make_v up_o the_o full_a object_n of_o faith_n and_o so_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o indeed_o general_o their_o whole_a church_n understand_v one_o to_o be_v incomplete_a without_o the_o other_o and_o yet_o master_n white_a who_o i_o suppose_v tell_v the_o same_o thing_n to_o his_o neighbour_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o catholic_n position_n that_o all_o its_o doctrine_n be_v not_o contain_v in_o scripture_n which_o proposition_n be_v tie_v with_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n give_v a_o very_a good_a account_n of_o it_o and_o make_v it_o excellent_a sense_n thus_o tradition_n must_v be_v receive_v with_o equal_a authority_n to_o the_o scripture_n say_v the_o council_n and_o wonder_v not_o for_o say_v master_n white_a all_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v in_o scripture_n you_o may_v believe_v so_o if_o you_o please_v for_o the_o contrary_n be_v not_o a_o catholic_n doctrine_n but_o if_o these_o two_o thing_n do_v not_o agree_v better_o than_o it_o will_v be_v hard_a to_o tell_v what_o regard_n will_v be_v have_v to_o what_o the_o council_n say_v the_o people_n know_v not_o that_o but_o as_o their_o priest_n teach_v they_o and_o though_o they_o be_v bind_v under_o great_a pain_n to_o believe_v the_o whole_a catholic_n religion_n yet_o that_o the_o priest_n themselves_o do_v not_o know_v it_o or_o wilful_o misreport_n it_o and_o therefore_o that_o the_o people_n can_v tell_v it_o it_o be_v too_o evident_a in_o this_o instance_n and_o in_o the_o multitude_n of_o dispute_n which_o be_v among_o themselves_o about_o many_o considerable_a article_n in_o their_o catholic_n religion_n alibi_fw-la vide_fw-la wadding_n of_o immac_n oncept_n p._n 282._o &_o p._n 334._o &_o alibi_fw-la pius_fw-la quintus_fw-la speak_v of_o thomas_n aquinas_n call_v his_o doctrine_n the_o most_o certain_a rule_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o divers_a particular_n of_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o romanist_n be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o revelation_n of_o s._n bridget_n which_o be_v contradict_v by_o those_o of_o s._n katherine_n of_o sienna_n now_o they_o not_o rely_v on_o the_o way_n of_o god_n fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o man_n who_o teach_v they_o according_a to_o the_o interest_n of_o their_o order_n or_o private_a fancy_n and_o expound_v their_o rule_n by_o measure_n of_o their_o own_o but_o yet_o such_o which_o they_o make_v to_o be_v the_o measure_n of_o salvation_n and_o damnation_n they_o be_v teach_v to_o rely_v for_o their_o faith_n upon_o the_o church_n and_o this_o when_o it_o come_v to_o practice_v be_v nothing_o but_o their_o private_a priest_n and_o he_o do_v not_o always_o tell_v they_o the_o sense_n of_o their_o church_n and_o be_v not_o infallible_a in_o declare_v the_o sense_n of_o it_o and_o be_v not_o always_o as_o appear_v in_o the_o instance_n now_o set_v down_o faithful_a in_o relate_v of_o it_o but_o first_o consens_fw-la himself_n by_o his_o subtlety_n and_o then_o other_o by_o his_o confidence_n and_o therefore_o in_o be_v impossible_a there_o can_v be_v any_o certainty_n to_o they_o that_o proceed_v this_o way_n when_o god_n have_v so_o plain_o give_v they_o a_o better_a and_o require_v of_o they_o nothing_o but_o to_o live_v a_o holy_a life_n as_o a_o superstructure_n of_o christian_a faith_n describe_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o plain_a place_n of_o scripture_n and_o in_o the_o apostolical_a creed_n in_o which_o they_o can_v suffer_v no_o illusion_n and_o where_o there_o be_v no_o uncertainty_n in_o the_o matter_n to_o be_v believe_v iv_o the_o next_o thing_n i_o observe_v be_v that_o they_o all_o talk_v of_o the_o church_n as_o of_o a_o charm_n and_o sacred_a amulet_n yet_o they_o can_v by_o all_o their_o art_n make_v we_o certain_a where_o or_o how_o infallible_o to_o find_v this_o church_n i_o have_v already_o in_o this_o section_n prove_v this_o in_o the_o main_a inquiry_n by_o show_v that_o the_o church_n be_v that_o body_n which_o they_o do_v not_o rely_v upon_o but_o now_o i_o shall_v show_v that_o the_o church_n which_o they_o will_v point_v out_o can_v never_o be_v certain_o know_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n by_o those_o indication_n and_o sign_n which_o they_o offer_v to_o the_o world_n as_o her_o characteristic_a note_n s._n austin_n in_o his_o excellent_a book_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la 3._o lib._n de_fw-fr vnit._n eccles._n cap._n &_o cap._n 17._o ergo_fw-la in_o scripture_n canonicis_fw-la eam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la requiramus_fw-la cap._n 3._o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o whereto_o be_v find_v but_o in_o praescripto_fw-la legis_fw-la in_fw-la prophetarum_fw-la praedictis_fw-la in_fw-la psalmorum_fw-la cantibus_fw-la in_fw-la ipsius_fw-la pastoris_fw-la vocibus_fw-la in_fw-la evangelistarum_fw-la praedicationibus_fw-la &_o laboribus_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la in_fw-la omnibus_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la canonicis_fw-la authoritatibus_fw-la in_o the_o scripture_n only_o and_o he_o give_v but_o one_o great_a note_n of_o it_o and_o that_o be_v adhere_v to_o the_o head_n jesus_n christ_n for_o the_o church_n be_v christ_n body_n who_o by_o charity_n be_v unite_v to_o one_o another_o and_o to_o christ_n their_o head_n and_o he_o that_o be_v not_o a_o member_n of_o christ_n can_v obtain_v salvation_n and_o he_o add_v no_o other_o mark_n but_o that_o christ_n church_n be_v not_o this_o or_o that_o viz._n not_o of_o one_o denomination_n but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d disperse_v over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n make_v adhesion_n to_o the_o head_n sententia_fw-la bellarm._n de_fw-fr eccles_n militant_a lib._n 3._o cap._n sect._n nostra_fw-la autem_fw-la sententia_fw-la not_o jesus_n christ_n but_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v of_o the_o essential_a constitution_n of_o the_o church_n now_o this_o be_v the_o great_a question_n between_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o indeed_o of_o all_o other_o church_n of_o the_o world_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o sign_n to_o know_v the_o church_n by_o that_o it_o be_v apparent_a they_o have_v no_o ground_n of_o their_o faith_n but_o the_o great_a question_n of_o christendom_n and_o that_o which_o be_v condemn_v by_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n but_o themselves_o be_v their_o foundation_n and_o this_o be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o considerable_a because_o concern_v very_o many_o head_n of_o their_o church_n it_o be_v too_o apparent_a that_o they_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o member_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o base_a of_o criminal_n and_o enemy_n of_o all_o godliness_n and_o concern_v other_o that_o be_v not_o so_o notorious_o wicked_a they_o can_v not_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o be_v member_n of_o christ_n or_o that_o they_o be_v not_o of_o their_o father_n the_o devil_n the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n be_v promise_v to_o the_o apostle_n upon_o condition_n and_o judas_n fall_v from_o it_o by_o transgression_n but_o the_o uncertainty_n be_v yetgreat_a adhere_v to_o the_o pope_n can_v be_v a_o certain_a note_n of_o the_o church_n because_o no_o man_n can_v be_v certain_a who_o be_v true_a pope_n for_o the_o pope_n if_o he_o be_v a_o simoniac_a be_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la no_o pope_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o bull_n of_o julius_n the_o second_o and_o yet_o beside_o that_o he_o himself_o be_v call_v a_o most_o notorious_a simoniac_a sixtus_n quintus_n give_v a_o obligation_n under_o his_o hand_n upon_o condition_n that_o the_o cardinal_n d'este_fw-fr will_v bring_v over_o his_o voice_n to_o he_o and_o make_v he_o pope_n that_o he_o will_v never_o make_v hierom_n matthew_n a_o cardinal_n which_o when_o he_o break_v the_o cardinal_n send_v his_o obligation_n to_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n who_o intend_v to_o accuse_v he_o of_o simony_n but_o it_o break_v the_o pope_n heart_n and_o so_o he_o escape_v here_o and_o be_v reserve_v to_o be_v hear_v before_o a_o more_o unerring_a judicatory_a and_o when_o pius_n quartus_fw-la use_v all_o the_o secret_a art_n to_o dissolve_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o yet_o not_o to_o be_v see_v in_o it_o and_o to_o that_o purpose_n dispatch_v away_o the_o bishop_n from_o rome_n he_o forbid_v the_o archbishop_n of_o
vidui●a●_n cap._n 1._o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o consummation_n or_o utmost_a bound_a rule_n of_o our_o doctrine_n that_o we_o may_v not_o dare_v to_o be_v wise_a than_o we_o ought_v and_o that_o not_o only_o in_o the_o question_n of_o widowhood_n but_o in_o all_o question_n which_o belong_v unto_o life_n and_o manner_n of_o live_a as_o himself_o in_o the_o same_o place_n declare_v and_o it_o be_v not_o only_o for_o laic_n and_o vulgar_a person_n but_o for_o all_o man_n and_o not_o only_o for_o what_o be_v mere_o necessary_a 3._o 2._o tim._n 3._o but_o to_o make_v we_o wise_a to_o make_v we_o perfect_a 606._o salmeron_n in_o hun●_n locum_fw-la tom_n 15._o p._n 607._o vide_fw-la plura_fw-la apud_fw-la eandem_fw-la p._n 606._o say_v the_o apostle_n and_o how_o can_v this_o man_n say_v that_o the_o scripture_n make_v a_o man_n perfect_a in_o justice_n and_o he_o that_o be_v perfect_a in_o justice_n need_v no_o more_o revelation_n which_o word_n be_v well_o enlarge_v by_o s._n cyril_n the_o divine_a scripture_n be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v they_o who_o be_v educate_v in_o it_o wise_a and_o most_o approve_v julian_n cyril_n alex._n l._n 7._o contr_n julian_n and_o have_v a_o most_o sufficient_a understanding_n and_o to_o this_o we_o need_v not_o any_o foreign_a teacher_n but_o last_o if_o in_o the_o plain_a word_n of_o scripture_n be_v contain_v all_o that_o be_v simple_o necessary_a to_o all_o than_o it_o be_v clear_a by_o bellarmine_n confession_n that_o s._n austin_n affirm_v that_o the_o plain_a place_n of_o scripture_n be_v sufficient_a to_o all_o laic_n and_o all_o idiot_n or_o private_a person_n and_o then_o as_o it_o be_v very_o ill_o do_v to_o keep_v they_o from_o the_o knowledge_n and_o use_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o contain_v all_o their_o duty_n both_o of_o faith_n and_o good_a life_n so_o it_o be_v very_o unnecessary_a to_o trouble_v they_o with_o any_o thing_n else_o there_o be_v in_o the_o world_n no_o such_o treasure_n and_o repository_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n and_o that_o so_o plain_a that_o it_o be_v intend_v for_o all_o man_n and_o for_o all_o such_o man_n be_v sufficient_a erem●_n s._n august_n ser._n 38._o ad_fw-la fratres_fw-la in_o erem●_n read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n wherein_o you_o shall_v find_v some_o thing_n to_o be_v hold_v and_o some_o to_o be_v avoid_v this_o be_v speak_v to_o the_o monk_n and_o brethren_n in_o the_o desert_n and_o to_o they_o that_o be_v to_o be_v guide_n of_o other_o &_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o reasonable_a flock_n and_o in_o that_o whole_a sermon_n he_o enumerate_v the_o admirable_a advantage_n fullness_n and_o perfection_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n out_o of_o which_o themselves_o be_v to_o be_v teach_v and_o by_o the_o fullness_n of_o which_o they_o be_v to_o teach_v other_o in_o all_o thing_n i_o shall_v not_o be_v troublesome_a by_o add_v those_o many_o clear_a testimony_n from_o other_o of_o the_o father_n but_o i_o can_v omit_v that_o of_o anastasius_n of_o antioch_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o to_o be_v inquire_v into_o hexameron_n lib._n 8._o anagogic_n contempt_n in_o hexameron_n which_o the_o scripture_n have_v pass_v over_o in_o silence_n for_o the_o holy_a spirit_n have_v dispense_v and_o administer_v to_o we_o all_o thing_n which_o conduce_v to_o our_o profit_n 3._o de_fw-fr voca●_n gentium_fw-la in_o 2._o tem_fw-la operum_fw-la s._n ambros_n l._n 2._o c._n 3._o if_o the_o scripture_n be_v silent_a who_o will_v speak_v say_v s._n prosper_n what_o thing_n we_o be_v ignorant_a of_o from_o they_o we_o learn_v say_v theodoret_n docendu●_n theodoret_n in_o 2._o t●m_n 3._o in_o illud_fw-la ad_fw-la docendu●_n and_o there_o be_v nothing_o which_o the_o scripture_n deny_v to_o dissolve_v say_v theophylact_v ibidem_fw-la theophylact_v ibidem_fw-la and_o the_o former_a of_o these_o bring_v in_o the_o christian_a say_v to_o eraniste_n 1_o eraniste_n dial._n 1_o tell_v not_o i_o of_o your_o logism_n and_o syllogism_n i_o rely_v upon_o scripture_n only_o but_o rupertus_n tuitiensis_n 12._o tuitiensis_n commen●_n in_o ●ib_n regum_fw-la lib._n 3._o c._n 12._o his_o word_n be_v a_o fit_a conclusion_n to_o this_o heap_n of_o testimony_n whatsoever_o be_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whatsoever_o ought_v to_o be_v know_v and_o preach_v of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o true_a divinity_n and_o humanity_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v so_o contain_v in_o the_o two_o testament_n that_o beside_o these_o there_o be_v nothing_o aught_o to_o be_v declare_v or_o believe_v the_o whole_a celestial_a oracle_n be_v comprehend_v in_o these_o which_o we_o ought_v so_o firm_o to_o know_v that_o beside_o these_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o hear_v either_o man_n or_o angel_n and_o all_o these_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o full_a subscription_n to_o and_o a_o excellent_a commentary_n upon_o those_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n let_v no_o man_n pretend_v to_o be_v wise_a above_o what_o be_v write_v by_o the_o concourse_n of_o these_o testimony_n of_o so_o many_o learned_a orthodox_n and_o ancient_a father_n we_o be_v abundant_o confirm_v in_o that_o rule_n and_o principle_n upon_o which_o the_o whole_a protestant_n and_o christian_a religion_n be_v establish_v from_o hence_o we_o learn_v all_o thing_n and_o by_o these_o we_o prove_v all_o thing_n and_o by_o these_o we_o confute_v heresy_n and_o prove_v every_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n according_a to_o this_o we_o live_v and_o on_o these_o we_o ground_n our_o hope_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o in_o these_o we_o reject_v from_o our_o canon_n and_o indeed_o that_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n shall_v be_v our_o only_a and_o entire_a rule_n we_o be_v sufficient_o convince_v by_o the_o title_n which_o the_o catholic_n church_n give_v and_o always_o have_v give_v to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o rule_n of_o christian_n for_o their_o whole_a religion_n the_o word_n itself_o end_v this_o enquiry_n for_o it_o can_v be_v a_o canon_n if_o any_o thing_n be_v put_v to_o it_o or_o take_v from_o it_o say_v eunom_fw-la say_v lib._n 1._o contr_n eunom_fw-la s._n basil_n theophyl_n basil_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d s._n chrysost._n hom._n 12._o in_o 3._o philip._n idem_fw-la dixit_fw-la theophyl_n s._n chrysostome_n and_o varinus_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d varinus_n varinus_n i_o hope_v i_o have_v competent_o prove_v the_o tradition_n i_o undertake_v and_o by_o it_o that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n contain_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n the_o sum_n be_v this_o if_o tradition_n be_v not_o regardable_a than_o the_o scripture_n alone_o be_v but_o if_o it_o be_v regard_v then_o here_o be_v a_o full_a tradition_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n for_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o contain_v in_o they_o all_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o which_o we_o be_v concern_v be_v deliver_v by_o a_o full_a consent_n of_o all_o these_o and_o many_o other_o father_n and_o no_o one_o father_n deny_v it_o which_o consent_n therefore_o be_v so_o great_a that_o if_o it_o may_v not_o prevail_v the_o topic_a of_o tradition_n will_v be_v of_o no_o use_n at_o all_o to_o they_o who_o will_v fain_o adopt_v it_o into_o a_o part_n of_o the_o canon_n but_o this_o i_o shall_v consider_v more_o particular_o only_o one_o thing_n more_o i_o be_o to_o add_v concern_v the_o interpretation_n and_o find_v out_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o though_o the_o scripture_n be_v allow_v to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a repository_n of_o all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n yet_o we_o may_v mistake_v our_o way_n if_o we_o have_v not_o some_o infallible_a judge_n of_o their_o sense_n to_o he_o therefore_o that_o shall_v ask_v how_o we_o shall_v interpret_v and_o understand_v the_o scripture_n i_o shall_v give_v that_o answer_n which_o i_o have_v learn_v from_o those_o father_n who_o testimony_n i_o have_v allege_v to_o prove_v the_o fullness_n and_o sufficiency_n of_o scripture_n for_o if_o they_o be_v never_o so_o full_a yet_o if_o it_o be_v fons_fw-la signatus_fw-la and_o the_o water_n of_o salvation_n do_v not_o issue_v forth_o to_o refresh_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o weary_a full_o they_o may_v be_v in_o themselves_o but_o they_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o we_o nor_o for_o the_o work_n of_o god_n in_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n but_o that_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v indeed_o write_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o no_o way_n deficient_a from_o the_o end_n of_o their_o design_n god_n have_v make_v they_o plain_a and_o easy_a to_o all_o people_n that_o be_v willing_a and_o obedient_a so_o s._n cyril_n julian_n lib._n 9_o contr_n julian_n nihil_fw-la in_o scripture_n difficile_fw-la est_fw-la iis_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o illis_fw-la
religion_n when_o he_o weak_o forsake_v it_o protestant_n be_v not_o renouncer_n of_o tradition_n for_o we_o allow_v all_o catholic_a tradition_n that_o can_v prove_v themselves_o to_o be_v such_o but_o we_o find_v little_a or_o nothing_o except_v this_o that_o the_o bible_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o bible_n contain_v all_o the_o will_n of_o god_n for_o our_o salvation_n all_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o life_n little_a or_o nothing_o else_o i_o say_v descend_v to_o we_o by_o a_o universal_a tradition_n therefore_o we_o have_v reason_n to_o adhere_v to_o scripture_n and_o renounce_v as_o i._n s._n be_v please_v to_o call_v it_o all_o pretence_n of_o tradition_n of_o any_o matter_n of_o faith_n not_o plain_o set_v down_o in_o the_o bible_n but_o now_o since_o we_o renounce_v no_o tradition_n but_o such_o as_o be_v not_o and_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v competent_a and_o catholic_n i_o hope_v with_o the_o leave_n of_o i._o s._n we_o may_v discourse_v out_o of_o scripture_n and_o council_n father_n and_o reason_n history_n and_o instance_n for_o we_o believe_v tradition_n when_o it_o be_v credible_a and_o we_o believe_v what_o two_o or_o three_o honest_a man_n say_v upon_o their_o knowledge_n and_o we_o make_v no_o scruple_n to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o english_a plantation_n in_o the_o barbados_n because_o many_o tell_v we_o so_o who_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o deceive_v we_o so_o that_o we_o be_v in_o a_o very_a good_a capacity_n of_o make_v use_n of_o scripture_n and_o council_n etc._n etc._n but_o i_o must_v deal_v free_o with_o mr._n s._n though_o we_o do_v believe_v these_o thing_n upon_o credible_a testimony_n yet_o we_o do_v not_o think_v the_o testimony_n infallible_a and_o we_o do_v believe_v many_o man_n who_o yet_o pretend_v not_o to_o infallibility_n and_o if_o nothing_o be_v credible_a but_o what_o be_v infallible_a than_o no_o man_n have_v reason_n to_o believe_v his_o priest_n or_o his_o father_n we_o be_v teach_v by_o aristotle_n that_o that_o be_v credible_a quod_fw-la pluribus_fw-la quod_fw-la sapientibus_fw-la quod_fw-la omnibus_fw-la videtur_fw-la and_o yet_o these_o be_v but_o degree_n of_o probability_n and_o yet_o be_v sufficient_a to_o warrant_v the_o transaction_n of_o all_o humane_a affair_n which_o unless_o where_o god_n be_v please_v to_o interpose_v be_v not_o capable_a of_o great_a assurance_n even_o the_o miracle_n wrought_v by_o our_o bless_a saviour_n though_o they_o be_v the_o best_a argument_n in_o the_o world_n to_o prove_v the_o divinity_n of_o his_o person_n and_o his_o mission_n yet_o they_o be_v but_o the_o best_a argument_n we_o need_v and_o understand_v but_o although_o they_o be_v infinite_o sufficient_a to_o convince_v all_o but_o the_o malicious_a yet_o there_o be_v some_o so_o malicious_a who_o do_v not_o allow_v they_o to_o be_v demonstration_n but_o say_v that_o he_o do_v cast_v out_o devil_n by_o beelzebub_n here_o we_o live_v by_o faith_n and_o not_o by_o knowledge_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o infinite_a goodness_n of_o god_n to_o give_v proof_n sufficient_a for_o we_o and_o fit_v to_o our_o nature_n and_o proportion_v to_o our_o understanding_n but_o yet_o such_o as_o may_v neither_o extinguish_v faith_n nor_o destroy_v the_o nature_n of_o hope_n which_o although_o it_o may_v be_v so_o certain_a and_o sure_a as_o to_o be_v a_o steadfast_a anchor_n of_o the_o soul_n yet_o it_o may_v have_v in_o it_o something_o of_o natural_a uncertainty_n and_o yet_o fill_v we_o with_o all_o comfort_n and_o hope_n in_o believe_v so_o that_o we_o allow_v tradition_n to_o be_v certain_a if_o it_o be_v universal_a and_o to_o be_v credible_a according_a to_o the_o degree_n of_o its_o universality_n and_o disintere_v simplicity_n and_o therefore_o we_o have_v as_o much_o right_n to_o use_v the_o scripture_n and_o father_n as_o i._n s._n and_o all_o his_o party_n and_o all_o his_o follow_a talk_n in_o the_o sequel_n of_o this_o second_o way_n rely_v upon_o a_o ground_n which_o i_o have_v discover_v to_o be_v false_a must_v needs_o fall_v of_o itself_o and_o signify_v nothing_o but_o although_o this_o point_n be_v soon_o wash_v off_o yet_o i_o suppose_v the_o charge_n which_o will_v recoil_v upon_o himself_o will_v not_o so_o easy_o be_v put_v by_o for_o though_o it_o appear_v that_o protestant_n have_v right_a to_o use_v father_n and_o council_n scripture_n and_o reason_n yet_o i._n s._n and_o his_o little_a convention_n of_o four_o or_o five_o brother_n of_o the_o tradition_n have_v clear_o disintitle_v themselves_o to_o any_o use_n of_o these_o for_o if_o the_o oral_a tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v the_o infallible_a and_o only_a rule_n of_o faith_n then_o there_o be_v no_o oracle_n but_o this_o one_o and_o the_o decree_n of_o council_n do_v bind_v only_o in_o that_o age_n they_o be_v make_v as_o be_v part_n of_o the_o tradition_n of_o that_o age_n but_o the_o next_o age_n need_v it_o not_o as_o giving_z testimony_n to_o itself_o and_o be_v it_o be_v own_o rule_n and_o therefore_o when_o a_o question_n be_v to_o be_v dispute_v you_o can_v go_v no_o whither_o to_o be_v try_v but_o to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n and_o this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v prove_v by_o a_o series_n and_o order_n of_o record_n and_o succession_n but_o if_o you_o will_v know_v what_o be_v former_o believe_v you_o must_v only_o ask_v what_o be_v believe_v now_o for_o now_o river_n run_v back_o to_o their_o spring_n and_o the_o lamb_n be_v to_o blame_v for_o trouble_v the_o wolf_n by_o drink_v in_o the_o descend_a river_n for_o the_o low_a be_v now_o high_o and_o you_o be_v not_o to_o prove_v by_o what_o be_v past_a that_o the_o present_a be_v right_a but_o by_o the_o present_a you_o prove_v what_o be_v past_a and_o harry_v the_o seven_o be_v before_o harry_n the_o six_o and_o child_n must_v teach_v their_o parent_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v to_o be_v hope_v in_o time_n may_v be_v their_o elder_n but_o by_o this_o mean_n father_n and_o council_n be_v make_v of_o no_o use_n to_o these_o gentleman_n who_o have_v great_o oblige_v the_o world_n by_o tell_v we_o a_o short_a way_n to_o science_n and_o though_o our_o life_n be_v short_a yet_o art_n be_v short_a especial_o in_o our_o way_n in_o theology_n concern_v which_o there_o need_v no_o labour_n no_o study_n no_o read_n but_o to_o know_v of_o the_o present_a church_n what_o be_v always_o believe_v and_o teach_v and_o what_o ought_v to_o be_v so_o nay_o what_o be_v do_v or_o what_o be_v say_v or_o what_o be_v write_v be_v to_o be_v tell_v by_o the_o present_a church_n which_o without_o further_a trouble_n can_v infallible_o assure_v we_o and_o upon_o this_o account_n the_o jesuit_n have_v get_v the_o better_a of_o the_o jansenist_n for_o though_o these_o man_n weak_o and_o fond_o deny_v such_o word_n to_o be_v in_o jansenius_n yet_o the_o virtual_a church_n can_v tell_v better_o whether_o they_o be_v or_o no_o in_o jansenius_n or_o rather_o it_o matter_n not_o whether_o they_o be_v or_o no_o for_o it_o be_v the_o present_a sense_n of_o the_o pope_n he_o may_v proceed_v to_o condemnation_n but_o i._o s._n offer_v at_o some_o reason_n for_o this_o for_o say_v he_o father_n be_v eminent_a witness_n to_o immediate_a posterity_n or_o child_n of_o the_o church_n doctrine_n receive_v and_o council_n representative_n of_o the_o church_n their_o strength_n as_o proof_n nay_o their_o very_a existence_n be_v not_o know_v till_o the_o notion_n of_o the_o church_n be_v know_v which_o be_v part_n of_o their_o definition_n and_o to_o which_o they_o relate_v this_o be_v but_o part_n of_o his_o argument_n which_o i_o yet_o must_v consider_v apart_o because_o every_o proposition_n of_o his_o argument_n have_v in_o it_o something_o very_o untrue_a which_o when_o i_o have_v remark_v i_o shall_v consider_v the_o whole_a of_o it_o altogether_o and_o here_o first_o i_o consider_v that_o it_o be_v a_o strange_a proposition_n to_o say_v that_o the_o existence_n of_o the_o father_n be_v not_o know_v till_o the_o notion_n or_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v know_v for_o who_o be_v there_o of_o any_o knowledge_n in_o any_o thing_n of_o this_o nature_n that_o have_v not_o hear_v of_o s._n austin_n s._n jerom_n s._n ambrose_n or_o s._n gregory_n the_o spaniard_n have_v a_o proverb_n there_o be_v never_o good_a oglio_fw-it without_o bacon_n nor_o good_a sermon_n without_o s._n austin_n and_o yet_o i_o suppose_v all_o the_o people_n of_o spain_n that_o hear_v the_o name_n of_o s._n austin_n it_o may_v be_v five_o hundred_o time_n every_o lent_n make_v no_o question_n of_o the_o existence_n of_o s._n austin_n or_o that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o man_n as_o he_o and_o yet_o i_o believe_v not_o very_o many_o of_o they_o can_v tell_v
the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n thousand_o of_o the_o people_n and_o the_o very_a boy_n see_v the_o picture_n of_o s._n austin_n sell_v in_o fair_n and_o market_n and_o yet_o be_v not_o so_o wise_a as_o to_o know_v the_o notion_n or_o nature_n of_o the_o church_n and_o indeed_o many_o wise_a people_n both_o among_o they_o and_o we_o will_v be_v very_o much_o to_o seek_v in_o the_o definition_n when_o your_o learned_a man_n among_o yourselves_o dispute_v what_o that_o nature_n or_o definition_n be_v but_o it_o may_v be_v though_o i._o s._n put_v father_n and_o council_n into_o the_o same_o proposition_n yet_o he_o mean_v it_o of_o council_n only_o and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o existence_n of_o council_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v have_v without_o the_o notion_n or_o definition_n of_o church_n and_o this_o be_v as_o false_a as_o the_o other_o for_o what_o tradesman_n in_o germany_n italy_n france_n or_o spain_n be_v not_o well_o enough_o assure_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o yet_o to_o the_o know_v of_o this_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v tell_v how_o church_n be_v to_o be_v define_v indeed_o they_o can_v not_o know_v what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v church-council_n unless_o they_o know_v as_o much_o of_o church_n as_o they_o do_v of_o council_n but_o what_o think_v we_o can_v not_o man_n know_v there_o be_v a_o council_n at_o ariminum_n more_o numerous_a than_o that_o at_o nice_n unless_o they_o have_v the_o notion_n of_o church_n certain_o the_o church_n be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o definition_n of_o that_o council_n nor_o do_v it_o relate_v save_v only_o as_o enemy_n be_v relative_n to_o each_o other_o and_o if_o they_o be_v yet_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o say_v they_o be_v part_n of_o each_o other_o definition_n but_o it_o may_v be_v i._o s._n mean_v this_o say_n of_o good_a and_o catholic_a council_n yet_o they_o also_o may_v be_v know_v to_o have_v be_v without_o skill_n in_o definition_n definition_n do_v not_o tell_v a_o sit_v but_o quid_fw-la sit_fw-la the_o first_o be_v to_o be_v suppose_v before_o any_o definition_n be_v to_o be_v inquire_v after_o well!_o but_o how_o shall_v the_o be_v or_o nature_n of_o church_n be_v know_v that_o be_v his_o second_o proposition_n and_o tell_v we_o a_o pretty_a thing_n nor_o be_v the_o be_v or_o nature_n of_o church_n know_v till_o it_o be_v certain_o know_v who_o be_v faithful_a or_o have_v true_a faith_n who_o not_o which_o must_v be_v manifest_v by_o their_o have_v or_o not_o have_v the_o true_a rule_n of_o faith_n why_o but_o do_v the_o have_v the_o true_a rule_n of_o faith_n make_v a_o man_n faithful_a can_v a_o man_n have_v the_o true_a rule_n of_o faith_n and_o yet_o forsake_v it_o or_o not_o make_v use_n of_o it_o or_o hide_v the_o truth_n in_o unrighteousness_n do_v the_o have_v the_o best_a antidote_n in_o the_o world_n make_v a_o man_n healthful_a though_o he_o live_v disorderly_a and_o make_v no_o use_n of_o it_o but_o to_o let_v that_o pass_v among_o the_o other_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o which_o be_v more_o remarkable_a be_v that_o the_o be_v or_o nature_n of_o church_n be_v not_o know_v till_o it_o be_v certain_o know_v who_o be_v faithful_a or_o have_v true_a faith_n i_o have_v think_v that_o the_o way_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n of_o pronounce_v man_n faithful_a or_o to_o have_v true_a faith_n have_v be_v their_o be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o adhere_n to_o the_o church_n who_o be_v and_o truth_n they_o must_v therefore_o be_v presuppose_v to_o believe_v have_v be_v the_o only_a way_n of_o pronounce_v they_o faithful_a which_o i_o suppose_v so_o certain_a among_o they_o that_o though_o they_o have_v no_o faith_n at_o all_o but_o to_o believe_v as_o the_o church_n believe_v have_v be_v a_o sufficient_a declaration_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o ignorant_a man_n but_o it_o seem_v the_o table_n be_v turn_v it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o go_v to_o the_o church_n but_o first_o they_o must_v be_v assure_v that_o they_o be_v faithful_a and_o have_v true_a faith_n before_o they_o know_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o church_n but_o if_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v the_o only_a rule_n of_o faith_n as_o i._n s._n will_v fain_o make_v we_o believe_v than_o it_o have_v be_v true_a say_v a_o man_n can_v not_o know_v the_o be_v or_o nature_n of_o faith_n till_o he_o be_v well_o acquaint_v with_o the_o church_n and_o must_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v try_v by_o the_o church_n and_o must_v the_o church_n be_v try_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n the_o measure_n and_o touchstone_n of_o faith_n and_o yet_o must_v we_o have_v the_o faith_n before_o we_o have_v any_o knowledge_n whether_o there_o be_v a_o church_n or_o no_o be_v they_o both_o first_o and_o both_o prove_v one_o another_o and_o be_v there_o here_o no_o circle_n but_o however_o i_o be_o glad_a that_o the_o evidence_n of_o truth_n have_v bring_v this_o gentleman_n to_o acknowledge_v that_o our_o way_n be_v the_o better_a way_n and_o that_o we_o must_v first_o choose_v our_o religion_n and_o then_o our_o church_n and_o not_o first_o choose_v our_o church_n and_o then_o blind_o follow_v the_o religion_n of_o it_o whatsoever_o it_o be_v but_o then_o also_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o i._o s._n have_v destroy_v his_o main_a hypothesis_n and_o the_o oral_a tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v not_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n for_o that_o must_v first_o be_v know_v before_o we_o can_v know_v whether_o there_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o the_o church_n or_o no_o who_o rule_n that_o be_v pretend_v to_o be_v and_o now_o follow_v his_o conclusion_n which_o be_v nought_o upon_o other_o account_n wherefore_o say_v he_o since_o the_o property_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n do_v all_o agree_v to_o tradition_n our_o rule_n and_o none_o of_o they_o to_o they_o it_o follow_v the_o protestant_n or_o renouncer_n of_o tradition_n know_v not_o what_o be_v either_o right_a scripture_n father_n or_o council_n and_o so_o ought_v not_o to_o meddle_v with_o either_o of_o they_o to_o this_o i_o have_v already_o answer_v and_o what_o i._o s._n may_v do_v hereafter_o when_o he_o happen_v to_o fall_v into_o another_o fit_n of_o demonstration_n i_o know_v not_o but_o as_o yet_o he_o have_v be_v very_o far_o from_o do_v what_o he_o say_v he_o have_v do_v that_o be_v evident_o prove_v what_o he_o undertake_v in_o this_o question_n and_o i_o suppose_v i_o have_v in_o a_o follow_a section_n of_o this_o book_n evident_o prove_v that_o tradition_n such_o i_o mean_v as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n use_v in_o this_o inquiry_n lead_v into_o error_n or_o may_v do_v as_o often_o as_o into_o truth_n and_o therefore_o though_o we_o may_v and_o do_v use_v tradition_n as_o a_o probable_a argument_n in_o many_o thing_n and_o some_o as_o certain_a in_o one_o or_o two_o thing_n to_o which_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n it_o be_v apt_a to_o minister_v yet_o it_o be_v infinite_o far_o from_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n the_o whole_a christian_a faith_n but_o i_o wonder_v why_o i._o s._n say_v that_o for_o want_n of_o tradition_n we_o can_v know_v either_o right_a scripture_n father_n or_o council_n i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o by_o tradition_n they_o do_v know_v all_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n do_v they_o know_v by_o universal_a or_o apostolical_a tradition_n that_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n be_v canonical_a scripture_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o tradition_n for_o it_o for_o above_o four_o hundred_o year_n and_o they_o receive_v it_o at_o last_o from_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o then_o they_o not_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o great_a conserver_n of_o tradition_n and_o they_o will_v get_v nothing_o by_o that_o and_o what_o universal_a tradition_n can_v they_o pretend_v for_o those_o book_n which_o be_v reject_v by_o some_o council_n as_o particular_o that_o of_o laodicea_n which_o be_v in_o the_o code_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o some_o of_o the_o father_n which_o yet_o they_o now_o receive_v certain_o in_o that_o age_n which_o reject_v they_o there_o be_v no_o catholic_a tradition_n for_o they_o and_o those_o father_n which_o as_o i._o s._n express_v it_o be_v eminent_a witness_n to_o their_o immediate_a posterity_n or_o child_n of_o the_o church_n doctrine_n receive_v in_o all_o likelihood_n do_v teach_v their_o posterity_n what_o themselves_o profess_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v possible_a the_o father_n in_o that_o council_n and_o some_o other_o of_o the_o same_o sentiment_n may_v join_v in_o say_v something_o which_o may_v deceive_v their_o
profess_v to_o be_v infallible_a i_o be_o certain_a in_o nothing_o and_o without_o a_o infallible_a oral_a tradition_n it_o be_v impossible_a i_o shall_v be_v certain_a of_o any_o thing_n in_o answer_n to_o this_o i_o demand_v why_o i_o may_v not_o be_v as_o certain_a of_o what_o i_o know_v or_o believe_v as_o mr._n white_a or_o i._o s._n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n fire_n between_o death_n and_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o of_o the_o validity_n of_o the_o prayer_n and_o mass_n say_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o free_n of_o soul_n from_o purgatory_n long_o before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v this_o doctrine_n i_o say_v deliver_v by_o a_o infallible_a oral_a tradition_n or_o no_o if_o not_o than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n either_o be_v not_o certain_a it_o be_v true_a or_o else_o she_o be_v certain_a of_o it_o by_o some_o other_o way_n than_o such_o a_o tradition_n if_o yea_o then_o how_o be_v mr._n white_a certain_a that_o he_o speak_v true_a in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr statu_fw-la animarum_fw-la where_o he_o teach_v that_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n do_v no_o good_a and_o free_v no_o soul_n before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n for_o he_o have_v no_o oral_a tradition_n for_o his_o opinion_n for_o two_o oral_a tradition_n can_v be_v certain_a and_o infallible_a when_o they_o contradict_v one_o another_o and_o if_o the_o tradition_n be_v not_o infallible_a as_o good_a for_o these_o man_n that_o they_o be_v none_o at_o all_o so_o that_o either_o mr._n white_n can_v be_v certain_a of_o any_o thing_n he_o say_v by_o not_o rely_v on_o oral_a tradition_n or_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v certain_a and_o therefore_o he_o or_o she_o may_v forbear_v to_o persuade_v their_o friend_n to_o any_o thing_n and_o for_o my_o present_a adversary_n i._o s._n who_o also_o affirm_v that_o oral_a tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v the_o whole_a rule_n of_o faith_n how_o can_v he_o trust_v himself_o or_o be_v certain_a of_o any_o thing_n or_o teach_v any_o thing_n when_o his_o church_n say_v otherwise_o than_o he_o say_v and_o make_v tradition_n to_o be_v but_o a_o part_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n itself_o in_o the_o first_o decree_n of_o the_o four_o session_n veneratur_fw-la perspiciensque_fw-la hanc_fw-la verita_fw-la tem_fw-la &_o disciplinam_fw-la contineri_fw-la in_o libris_fw-la scriptis_fw-la &_o sine_fw-la scripto_fw-la traditionibus_fw-la omnes_fw-la libros_fw-la tamveteris_fw-la quam_fw-la n._n t._n nec_fw-la non_fw-la traditiones_fw-la ipsa●_n etc._n etc._n pari_fw-la pietatis_fw-la affectu_fw-la ac_fw-la reverentiâ_fw-la suscipit_fw-la &_o veneratur_fw-la so_o that_o in_o effect_n here_o be_v two_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o therefore_o two_o church_n mr._n i._n s.'s_n be_v the_o traditionary_a church_n so_o call_v from_o rely_v sole_o on_o tradition_n the_o other_o what_o shall_v we_o call_v it_o for_o distinction_n sake_n the_o purgatorian_a church_n from_o purgatory_n or_o if_o you_o will_v the_o imaginary_a church_n from_o worship_v image_n and_o since_o they_o do_v not_o both_o follow_v the_o same_o rule_n of_o faith_n the_o one_o make_v tradition_n alone_o to_o be_v the_o ground_n the_o other_z not_o so_o it_o will_v follow_v by_o mr._n i._o s._n his_o argument_n that_o either_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o miss_v the_o true_a ground_n of_o faith_n can_v be_v certain_a of_o any_o thing_n that_o they_o say_v and_o now_o when_o he_o have_v consider_v these_o thing_n let_v he_o reckon_v the_o advantage_n which_o his_o catholic_a faith_n gain_v by_o the_o opposition_n from_o her_o adversary_n if_o they_o be_v right_o handle_v as_o mr._n s._n have_v handle_v they_o and_o bring_v to_o his_o ground_n but_o however_o the_o opposition_n which_o i_o have_v now_o make_v have_v its_o advantage_n upon_o the_o weakness_n of_o mr._n whites_n ground_n and_o i._o s.'s_n demonstration_n yet_o i_o shall_v without_o relation_n to_o they_o but_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o other_o ground_n which_o his_o wise_a and_o more_o learned_a brethren_n of_o the_o other_o church_n do_v lay_v make_v it_o appear_v that_o there_o be_v indeed_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n no_o sure_a foot_n no_o foundation_n of_o faith_n upon_o which_o a_o man_n can_v with_o certainty_n rely_v and_o say_v now_o i_o be_o infallible_o sure_a that_o i_o be_o in_o the_o right_n the_o five_o way_n the_o five_o way_n i._o s._n say_v be_v build_v on_o the_o four_o which_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v a_o ruinous_a foundation_n i_o have_v the_o less_o need_n to_o trouble_v myself_o about_o that_o which_o will_v fall_v of_o itself_o but_o because_o he_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o trust_v that_o foundation_n for_o all_o his_o confidence_n he_o be_v glad_a to_o build_v his_o five_o way_n on_o the_o protestant_n voluntary_a concession_n for_o they_o grant_v they_o have_v no_o demonstration_n for_o the_o ground_n of_o their_o faith_n must_v say_v they_o have_v only_a probability_n but_o i_o pray_v who_o tell_v i._o s._n that_o we_o grant_v we_o have_v no_o demonstration_n for_o the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n do_v ever_o any_o protestant_a say_n that_o there_o be_v no_o moral_a demonstration_n of_o his_o faith_n or_o that_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v so_o certain_a so_o infallible_a that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o it_o if_o i._o s._n will_v descend_v so_o low_a as_o to_o look_v upon_o the_o book_n of_o a_o protestant_n beside_o many_o better_a 124._o book_n 1._o chap._n pag._n 124._o he_o may_v find_v in_o my_o case_n of_o conscience_n a_o demonstration_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o although_o it_o consist_v of_o probability_n yet_o so_o many_o so_o unquestioned_a so_o confess_v so_o reasonable_a so_o uncontradict_v pass_v into_o a_o argument_n of_o as_o much_o certainty_n as_o humane_a nature_n without_o a_o miracle_n be_v capable_a of_o as_o many_o sand_n heap_v together_o make_v a_o bank_n strong_a enough_o to_o resist_v the_o impetuosity_n of_o the_o rage_a sea_n but_o i_o have_v already_o show_v upon_o what_o certainty_n our_o faith_n rely_v and_o if_o we_o have_v nothing_o but_o high_a probability_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v as_o good_a as_o their_o prudential_a motive_n and_o therefore_o i_o shall_v not_o repeat_v any_o thing_n but_o pass_v on_o to_o consider_v what_o it_o be_v he_o say_v of_o our_o high_a probability_n if_o they_o be_v no_o more_o if_o there_o be_v probability_n on_o both_o side_n than_o the_o great_a must_v carry_v it_o so_o he_o roundly_o profess_v never_o consider_v that_o the_o latter_a casuist_n of_o his_o church_n i_o mean_v those_o who_o write_v since_o angelus_n silvester_n cordubensis_n and_o cajetan_n do_v express_o teach_v the_o contrary_a viz._n that_o of_o two_o probability_n the_o less_o may_v be_v choose_v and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o common_a and_o more_o receive_v opinion_n but_o since_o i._o s._n be_v in_o the_o right_n let_v they_o and_o he_o agree_v it_o as_o we_o do_v if_o they_o please_v i_o hope_v he_o relate_v this_o only_a to_o the_o question_n between_o we_o and_o rome_n and_o not_o to_o the_o christian_a faith_n well_o but_o if_o the_o matter_n be_v only_o between_o we_o i_o be_o well_o enough_o content_a and_o the_o great_a probability_n that_o be_v the_o better_a argument_n shall_v carry_v it_o and_o i_o will_v not_o be_v ask_v any_o more_o odd_a question_n as_o why_o i._o s._n have_v so_o clear_o demonstrate_v his_o religion_n by_o ground_n firm_a as_o the_o land_n of_o delos_n or_o o_o brasile_n he_o shall_v now_o be_v content_a to_o argue_v his_o cause_n at_o the_o bar_n of_o probability_n well_o but_o let_v we_o see_v what_o he_o say_v for_o his_o party_n that_o there_o be_v no_o probability_n for_o our_o side_n say_v i_o s._n be_v very_o hard_a to_o be_v say_v since_o the_o whole_a world_n see_v plain_o we_o still_o maintain_v the_o field_n against_o they_o nay_o dare_v pretend_v without_o fear_v a_o absolute_a baffle_n which_o must_v needs_o follow_v have_v we_o not_o at_o least_o probability_n to_o befriend_v we_o that_o our_o ground_n be_v evident_o and_o demonstrable_o certain_a here_o i._n s._n seem_v to_o be_v afraid_a again_o of_o his_o probability_n that_o he_o still_o run_v to_o covert_n under_o his_o broad_a shield_n of_o demonstration_n but_o his_o postulatum_fw-la here_o be_v indeed_o very_o modest_a he_o seem_v to_o desire_v we_o to_o allow_v that_o there_o be_v some_o probable_a thing_n to_o be_v say_v for_o his_o side_n and_o indeed_o he_o be_v very_o hard_o heart_v that_o shall_v say_v there_o be_v none_o at_o all_o some_o probability_n we_o shall_v allow_v but_o no_o ground_n evident_o and_o demonstrative_o certain_a good_a sir_n and_o yet_o let_v i_o tell_v you_o this_o there_o be_v some_o of_o your_o proposition_n for_o
which_o there_o be_v probable_a reason_n or_o fair_a pretence_n in_o the_o world_n nothing_o that_o can_v handsome_o or_o ingenious_o deceive_v a_o man_n such_o as_o be_v your_o half_a communion_n worship_n of_o image_n prayer_n not_o understand_v and_o some_o other_o and_o therefore_o you_o may_v be_v ashamed_a to_o say_v you_o still_o maintain_v the_o field_n against_o we_o for_o if_o you_o do_v not_o why_o do_v you_o say_v you_o do_v but_o if_o you_o still_o maintain_v the_o field_n you_o may_v be_v more_o ashamed_a for_o why_o will_v you_o stand_v in_o a_o falsehood_n and_o then_o call_v yourselves_o equal_a combatant_n if_o not_o conqueror_n but_o you_o may_v if_o you_o please_v look_v after_o victory_n i_o be_o only_o in_o the_o pursuit_n of_o truth_n but_o to_o return_v it_o seem_v he_o know_v my_o mind_n for_o this_o and_o in_o my_o liberty_n of_o prophesy_v my_o own_o word_n will_v beyond_o all_o confute_v evince_v it_o that_o they_o have_v probability_n and_o those_o strong_a one_o too_o but_o now_o in_o my_o conscience_n this_o be_v unkind_o do_v that_o when_o i_o have_v speak_v for_o they_o what_o i_o can_v and_o more_o than_o i_o know_v that_o they_o have_v ever_o say_v for_o themselves_o and_o yet_o to_o save_v they_o harmless_a from_o the_o iron_n hand_n of_o a_o tyrant_n and_o unreasonable_a power_n to_o keep_v they_o from_o be_v persecute_v for_o their_o error_n and_o opinion_n that_o they_o shall_v take_v the_o arm_n i_o have_v lend_v they_o for_o their_o defence_n and_o throw_v they_o at_o my_o head_n but_o the_o best_a of_o it_o be_v though_o i._o s._n be_v unthankful_a yet_o the_o weapon_n themselves_o be_v but_o wooden_a dagger_n intend_v only_o to_o represent_v how_o the_o poor_a man_n be_v cozen_v by_o themselves_o and_o that_o under_o fair_a and_o fraudulent_a pretence_n even_o pious_a well_o mean_v man_n and_o man_n wise_a enough_o in_o other_o thing_n may_v be_v abuse_v and_o though_o what_o i_o say_v be_v but_o tinsel_n and_o pretence_n imagery_n and_o whip_v cream_n yet_o i_o can_v not_o be_v blame_v to_o use_v no_o better_o than_o the_o best_a their_o cause_n will_v bear_v yet_o if_o that_o be_v the_o best_a they_o have_v to_o say_v for_o themselves_o their_o probability_n will_v be_v soon_o out-ballanced_a by_o one_o scripture_n testimony_n urge_v by_o protestant_n and_o thou_o shall_v not_o worship_v any_o grave_a image_n will_v out_o weigh_v all_o the_o best_a and_o fair_a imagination_n of_o their_o church_n but_o since_o from_o i_o they_o borrow_v their_o light_a armour_n which_o be_v not_o pistol_n proof_n from_o i_o if_o they_o please_v they_o may_v borrow_v a_o remedy_n to_o undeceive_v they_o and_o that_o in_o the_o same_o kind_a and_o way_n of_o argue_v if_o i._o s._n please_v to_o read_v a_o letter_n or_o two_o of_o i_o to_o a_o gentlewoman_n not_o long_o before_o abuse_v in_o her_o religion_n by_o some_o roman_a emissary_n there_o he_o shall_v see_v so_o very_a much_o say_v against_o the_o roman_a way_n and_o that_o in_o instance_n evident_a and_o notorious_a that_o i._o s._n may_v if_o he_o please_v he_o have_v my_o leave_n put_v they_o in_o balance_n against_o one_o another_o 703_o collection_n of_o polemical_a and_o moral_a discourse_n pag._n 703_o and_o try_v which_o will_v preponderate_v they_o be_v print_v now_o in_o one_o volume_n and_o they_o be_v the_o easy_a compare_v but_o then_o i._n s._n may_v if_o he_o have_v please_v have_v consider_v that_o i_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o make_v that_o harangue_n to_o represent_v that_o the_o roman_a religion_n have_v probability_n of_o be_v true_a but_o probability_n that_o the_o religion_n may_v be_v tolerate_v or_o may_v be_v endure_v that_o be_v as_o i_o there_o express_v it_o whether_o the_o doctrine_n be_v commence_v upon_o design_n and_o manage_v with_o impiety_n and_o have_v effect_n not_o to_o be_v endure_v and_o concern_v these_o thing_n i_o amass_v a_o heap_n of_o consideration_n by_o which_o it_o may_v appear_v probable_a that_o they_o be_v not_o so_o bad_a as_o to_o be_v intolerable_a and_o if_o i_o be_v deceive_v it_o be_v but_o a_o well_o mean_v error_n hereafter_o they_o shall_v speak_v for_o themselves_o only_o for_o their_o comfort_n this_o they_o may_v have_v also_o observe_v in_o that_o book_n that_o there_o be_v not_o half_a so_o much_o excuse_v for_o the_o papist_n as_o there_o be_v for_o the_o anabaptist_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v but_o a_o excuse_n at_o the_o best_a as_o appear_v in_o those_o full_a answer_n i_o have_v give_v to_o all_o their_o argument_n in_o the_o last_o edition_n of_o that_o book_n among_o the_o polemical_a discourse_n in_o folio_n i_o shall_v need_v to_o say_v no_o more_o for_o the_o spoil_v this_o i_o for_o i._o s._n have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o pretend_v that_o the_o probability_n urge_v for_o they_o can_v outweigh_v or_o come_v to_o equal_v what_o be_v say_v against_o they_o and_o i_o humble_o suppose_v that_o the_o difficulty_n will_v be_v increase_v by_o the_o follow_a book_n the_o six_o and_o seven_o way_n the_o six_o mine_n be_v most_o likely_a at_o the_o worst_a to_o prove_v but_o a_o squib_n i._o s._n say_v i_o shall_v have_v make_v a_o preface_n and_o before_o hand_n have_v prove_v that_o all_o the_o argument_n i_o use_v be_v unanswerable_a and_o convictive_a which_o indeed_o be_v a_o pretty_a way_n of_o make_v book_n to_o make_v a_o preface_n to_o make_v good_a my_o book_n and_o then_o my_o book_n can_v but_o in_o thankfulness_n make_v good_a the_o preface_n which_o indeed_o be_v something_o like_o the_o way_n of_o prove_v the_o scripture_n by_o the_o church_n and_o then_o back_o again_o prove_v the_o church_n by_o the_o scripture_n but_o he_o add_v that_o i_o be_v bind_v to_o say_v that_o they_o be_v never_o pretend_v to_o be_v answer_v or_o can_v not_o or_o that_o the_o protestant_n have_v the_o last_o word_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_n i_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o evidence_n on_o both_o side_n have_v be_v so_o often_o produce_v that_o it_o will_v seem_v almost_o impossible_a to_o bring_v in_o new_a matter_n or_o to_o prevail_v with_o the_o old_a this_o be_v the_o great_a charge_n the_o sum_n of_o which_o be_v true_o this_o i_o have_v speak_v modest_o of_o my_o own_o undertake_n and_o yet_o i_o have_v so_o great_a reason_n to_o deplore_v the_o obstinacy_n of_o the_o roman_a priest_n their_o pertinacy_n and_o incorrigible_a resolution_n of_o seem_v to_o say_v something_o when_o they_o can_v say_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n that_o i_o have_v cause_n to_o fear_v the_o event_n will_v not_o be_v so_o successful_a as_o the_o merit_n of_o our_o cause_n and_o the_o energy_n of_o the_o argument_n may_v promise_v i_o confess_v i_o do_v not_o rant_v as_o i._o s._n do_v and_o talk_v high_a of_o demonstration_n and_o unmistakable_a ground_n and_o scientifical_a principle_n and_o metaphysical_a nothing_o but_o according_a as_o my_o undertake_n require_v i_o proceed_v upon_o principle_n agree_v on_o both_o side_n if_o scripture_n and_o father_n council_n and_o reason_n the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n from_o which_o i_o prove_v and_o shall_v yet_o more_o clear_o prove_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v great_o revolt_v will_v not_o prevail_v i_o have_v do_v i_o shall_v only_o commit_v the_o cause_n to_o god_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o wise_a and_o good_a man_n and_o so_o sit_v down_o in_o the_o peace_n of_o my_o own_o persuasion_n and_o in_o a_o good_a conscience_n that_o i_o have_v do_v my_o endeavour_n to_o secure_v our_o own_o people_n from_o the_o temptation_n and_o to_o snatch_v other_o as_o brand_n from_o the_o fire_n only_o i_o wish_v here_o i_o have_v find_v a_o little_a more_o worthiness_n in_o i._n s._n than_o to_o make_v i_o speak_v that_o i_o have_v bring_v nothing_o but_o common_a objection_n or_o nothing_o new_a i_o suppose_v they_o that_o be_v learn_v know_v this_o to_o be_v a_o calumny_n and_o by_o experience_n they_o and_o i_o find_v that_o whether_o the_o objection_n be_v new_a or_o old_a it_o be_v easy_a to_o rail_v at_o they_o all_o than_o answer_v any_o to_o this_o as_o it_o be_v not_o needful_a to_o say_v any_o more_o so_o there_o can_v any_o thing_n else_o well_o be_v say_v unless_o i_o shall_v be_v vain_a like_o the_o man_n who_o i_o now_o reprove_v and_o go_v about_o to_o commend_v myself_o which_o be_v a_o practice_n i_o have_v neither_o reason_n nor_o custom_n for_o but_o the_o seven_o way_n be_v yet_o worse_o for_o it_o be_v no_o thing_n but_o a_o direct_a declamation_n against_o my_o book_n and_o the_o quotation_n of_o it_o and_o have_v make_v a_o ridiculous_a engine_n of_o corollary_n in_o his_o sure-footing_a against_o the_o quotation_n in_o dr._n p._n his_o
glossator_fw-la false_o apply_v to_o all_o the_o work_n of_o the_o father_n against_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o father_n themselves_o quote_v by_o gratian_n in_o the_o nine_o distinction_n and_o against_o the_o sense_n of_o gelasius_n himself_o in_o that_o very_a chapter_n which_o he_o refer_v to_o in_o the_o fifteen_o distinction_n it_o may_v be_v i._o s._n have_v not_o so_o much_o to_o say_v for_o his_o bold_a proposition_n as_o this_o itself_o come_v to_o which_o if_o he_o have_v ever_o see_v he_o must_v needs_o have_v see_v in_o the_o same_o place_n very_o much_o to_o the_o contrary_n but_o that_o not_o only_o the_o father_n themselves_o have_v teach_v he_o to_o speak_v more_o modest_o of_o they_o than_o he_o do_v and_o that_o divers_a lead_v man_n of_o his_o church_n have_v reprove_v this_o foolish_a affirmative_a of_o his_o he_o may_v be_v satisfy_v if_o he_o please_v to_o read_v aquinas_n authoritatibus_fw-la canonicae_fw-la scripturae_fw-la utitur_fw-la sacra_fw-la doctrina_fw-la ex_fw-la necessitate_v argumentando_fw-la arg_n primâ_fw-la parte_fw-la q._n 1._o part_n 8._o ad_fw-la 2._o arg_n authoritatibus_fw-la autem_fw-la aliorum_fw-la doctorum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la quasi_fw-la arguendo_fw-la ex_fw-la propriis_fw-la sed_fw-la probabiliter_fw-la now_o i_o know_v not_o what_o hope_n of_o escape_v i._o s._n can_v have_v by_o his_o restrictive_a term_n the_o testimony_n of_o father_n speak_v of_o they_o proper_o as_o such_o for_o beside_o that_o the_o word_n mean_v nothing_o and_o the_o testimony_n of_o father_n be_v the_o testimony_n of_o father_n as_o such_o or_o it_o be_v just_a nothing_o at_o all_o beside_o this_o i_o say_v that_o aquinas_n affirm_v that_o their_o whole_a authority_n and_o therefore_o of_o father_n as_o such_o be_v only_o probable_a and_o therefore_o certain_o not_o infallible_a but_o this_o be_v so_o fond_a a_o proposition_n of_o i._o s._n that_o i_o be_o ashamed_a to_o speak_v any_o more_o of_o it_o and_o if_o he_o be_v not_o very_o ignorant_a of_o what_o his_o church_n hold_v 7._o lib._n 1._o adv_n haeres_fw-la c._n 7._o he_o will_v never_o have_v say_v it_o etc._n lib._n 7._o loc_fw-la theol_n c._n 3._o n._n 4._o etc._n etc._n but_o for_o his_o better_a information_n i_o desire_v the_o gentleman_n to_o read_v alphonsus_n a_o castro_n melehior_n canus_n and_o bellarmine_n dice_v de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la lib._n 3._o c._n 10._o sect._n dice_v it_o be_v not_o therefore_o the_o constant_a doctrine_n of_o the_o romanist_n that_o the_o father_n be_v infallible_a for_o i_o never_o read_v or_o hear_v any_o man_n say_v it_o but_o i._n s._n and_o neither_o be_v it_o the_o avow_a doctrine_n of_o that_o church_n unless_o he_o will_v condemn_v all_o they_o for_o heretic_n that_o deny_v it_o some_o of_o which_o i_o have_v already_o name_v and_o more_o will_v be_v add_v upon_o this_o occasion_n well!_o but_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v that_o the_o father_n testimony_n be_v a_o testimony_n of_o father_n speak_v proper_o as_o such_o for_o this_o doughty_a question_n we_o be_v to_o inquire_v after_o in_o the_o pursuit_n of_o i._o s._n his_o mine_n and_o cracker_n he_o say_v in_o two_o case_n they_o speak_v as_o father_n 1._o when_o they_o declare_v it_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o present_a church_n of_o their_o time_n 2._o when_o they_o write_v against_o any_o man_n as_o a_o heretic_n or_o his_o tenet_n as_o heresy_n it_o seem_v then_o in_o these_o the_o father_n testimony_n be_v infallible_a let_v we_o try_v this_o 1._o all_o or_o any_o thing_n of_o this_o may_v be_v do_v by_o father_n suppose_v such_o but_o real_o not_o so_o and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o infallible_o certain_a which_o be_v and_o which_o be_v not_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n we_o be_v nothing_o the_o near_a though_o it_o be_v agree_v that_o the_o true_a father_n testimony_n be_v infallible_a or_o 2._o if_o the_o book_n allege_v be_v the_o book_n of_o the_o father_n pretend_v and_o not_o of_o a_o obscure_a or_o heretical_a person_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v the_o word_n be_v interpolate_v or_o the_o testimony_n some_o way_n or_o other_o corrupt_v and_o then_o the_o testimony_n be_v not_o infallible_a when_o there_o be_v no_o absolute_a certainty_n of_o the_o witness_n themselves_o or_o the_o record_n and_o what_o cause_v there_o be_v of_o reject_v very_o many_o and_o doubt_v more_o and_o therefore_o in_o matter_n of_o present_a interest_n and_o question_n of_o uncertainty_n and_o fallibility_n in_o too_o many_o be_v know_v to_o every_o learned_a man_n and_o confess_v by_o writer_n of_o both_o side_n 2._o it_o be_v very_o seldom_o that_o any_o of_o the_o father_n do_v use_v that_o expression_n of_o say_v this_o or_o this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o if_o they_o speak_v as_o father_n never_o but_o when_o these_o two_o case_n happen_v the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n will_v be_v of_o very_o little_a use_n in_o i._o s.'s_n way_n 3._o and_o yet_o after_o all_o this_o if_o we_o shall_v descend_v to_o instance_n i._n s._n will_v not_o dare_v to_o justify_v what_o he_o say_v be_v justin_n martyr_n infallible_a when_o he_o say_v that_o all_o christian_n who_o be_v pure_a believer_n do_v believe_v the_o millenary_a doctrine_n certain_o they_o be_v the_o church_n for_o the_o other_o he_o say_v be_v such_o as_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n but_o be_v gennadius_n or_o else_o s._n austin_n father_n and_o they_o infallible_a in_o the_o book_n de_fw-fr dogmatibus_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la in_o which_o he_o intend_v to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n i._o s._n seem_v to_o acknowledge_v it_o by_o affirm_v a_o say_n out_o of_o that_o book_n to_o have_v be_v then_o the_o fide_fw-la which_o because_o it_o have_v be_v oppose_v by_o very_a many_o of_o the_o father_n he_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o affirm_v but_o upon_o the_o witness_n of_o gennadius_n put_v it_o into_o his_o book_n of_o ecclesiastical_a doctrine_n and_o he_o afterward_o call_v it_o the_o testimony_n of_o gennadius_n deliver_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n 315._o pag._n 315._o it_o be_v there_o say_v that_o all_o man_n shall_v die_v christ_n only_a except_v that_o death_n may_v reign_v from_o adam_n upon_o all_o hanc_fw-la rationem_fw-la maxima_fw-la patrum_fw-la turba_fw-la tradente_fw-la suscepimus_fw-la this_o account_n we_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o great_a company_n of_o the_o father_n if_o this_o be_v a_o tradition_n deliver_v by_o the_o great_a number_n of_o the_o father_n than_o 1._o tradition_n be_v not_o a_o sure_a rule_n of_o say_v for_o this_o tradition_n be_v false_a and_o express_o against_o scripture_n and_o 2._o it_o follow_v that_o tradition_n be_v not_o then_o esteem_v a_o sure_a rule_n of_o faith_n for_o although_o this_o be_v a_o tradition_n from_o so_o great_a a_o troop_n of_o father_n at_o he_o say_v it_o be_v yet_o there_o be_v in_o his_o time_n alii_fw-la aeque_fw-la catholici_fw-la &_o eruditi_fw-la viri_fw-la other_o as_o good_a catholic_n and_o as_o learned_a that_o believe_v as_o s._n paul_n believe_v that_o we_o shall_v not_o all_o dye_n but_o we_o shall_v all_o be_v change_v and_o however_o it_o be_v yet_o all_o that_o troop_n of_o father_n he_o speak_v of_o from_o whence_o the_o tradition_n come_v be_v not_o infallible_a for_o they_o be_v actual_o deceive_v now_o this_o instance_n be_v of_o great_a consideration_n and_o force_n against_o i._o s._n his_o first_o and_o self_n evident_a principle_n concern_v oral_a tradition_n for_o all_o that_o number_n of_o father_n if_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n have_v be_v only_o oral_a tradition_n will_v horrible_o have_v disturb_v the_o pure_a current_n of_o tradition_n and_o of_o necessity_n must_v have_v prevail_v in_o i._o s._n his_o way_n or_o at_o least_o the_o contrary_n which_o be_v the_o truth_n and_o express_o affirm_v in_o scripture_n can_v never_o have_v have_v the_o irrefragable_a testimony_n of_o oral_a tradition_n but_o thanks_o be_v to_o god_n in_o this_o the_o church_n adhere_v to_o the_o sure_a word_n of_o prophecy_n the_o scripture_n prove_v the_o sure_a rule_n of_o faith_n but_o again_o s._n austin_n or_o gennadius_n say_v that_o after_o christ_n resurrection_n the_o soul_n of_o all_o the_o saint_n be_v with_o christ_n and_o that_o go_v forth_o from_o the_o body_n they_o go_v to_o christ_n expect_v the_o resurrection_n of_o their_o body_n this_o he_o deliver_v as_o the_o ecclesiastical_a doctrine_n and_o do_v the_o patron_n of_o purgatory_n believe_v he_o in_o this_o to_o be_v infallible_a for_o my_o part_n i_o think_v s._n austin_n be_v in_o the_o right_a but_o i_o think_v i._n s._n will_v not_o grant_v this_o to_o be_v the_o avow_a and_o constant_a doctrine_n of_o his_o church_n the_o second_o case_n in_o which_o they_o speak_v as_o father_n be_v when_o they_o write_v against_o any_o man_n as_o a_o
or_o the_o authority_n of_o plain_a scripture_n but_o this_o will_v be_v nothing_o to_o i._o s._n his_o hypothesis_n for_o if_o a_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a father_n do_v deliver_v the_o contrary_a there_o be_v no_o irrefragable_a catholic_a oral_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n when_o so_o considerable_a a_o part_n of_o the_o church_n deliver_v the_o contrary_a as_o their_o own_o doctrine_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v imagine_v they_o will_v have_v do_v if_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n of_o that_o age_n be_v against_o it_o and_o if_o we_o can_v suppose_v this_o case_n that_o one_o part_n of_o the_o father_n shall_v say_v this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n when_o another_o part_n of_o the_o father_n be_v of_o a_o contrary_a judgement_n either_o they_o do_v not_o say_v true_a and_o then_o the_o father_n testimony_n speak_v as_o witness_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o their_o age_n be_v not_o infallible_a or_o if_o they_o do_v say_v true_a yet_o their_o testimony_n be_v not_o esteem_v sufficient_a because_o the_o other_o father_n who_o must_v needs_o know_v it_o if_o it_o be_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n then_o do_v not_o take_v it_o for_o truth_n or_o sufficient_a and_o that_o maxim_n which_o be_v receive_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n that_o a_o major_a part_n of_o voice_n be_v sufficient_a for_o decree_a in_o a_o matter_n of_o reformation_n but_o that_o a_o decree_n of_o faith_n can_v not_o be_v make_v if_o a_o considerable_a part_n do_v contradict_v rely_v upon_o the_o same_o reason_n faith_n be_v every_o man_n duty_n and_o every_o man_n concern_n and_o every_o man_n learning_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v suppose_v that_o any_o thing_n can_v be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n in_o which_o a_o number_n of_o wise_a and_o good_a man_n be_v at_o difference_n either_o as_o doctor_n or_o as_o witness_n and_o of_o this_o we_o have_v a_o great_a testimony_n from_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n 3._o common_n c._n 3._o in_o ipsa_fw-la item_n ecclesia_fw-la magnopere_fw-la curandum_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la id_fw-la teneamus_fw-la quod_fw-la ubique_fw-la quod_fw-la semper_fw-la quod_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la creditum_fw-la est_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la enim_fw-la verè_fw-la propriéque_fw-la catholicum_fw-la not_o that_o which_o a_o part_n of_o the_o father_n but_o that_o which_o be_v say_v every_o where_o always_o and_o by_o all_o that_o be_v true_o and_o proper_o chatholic_n and_o this_o say_v he_o be_v great_o to_o be_v take_v care_n of_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n from_o all_o these_o premise_n it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o dissuasive_a do_v or_o may_v to_o very_o good_a purpose_n make_v use_n of_o the_o father_n and_o if_o i_o do_v there_o or_o shall_v in_o the_o follow_a section_n make_v it_o appear_v that_o in_o such_o a_o age_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n the_o doctrine_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n at_o this_o day_n impose_v on_o the_o world_n as_o article_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o then_o account_v article_n of_o faith_n but_o either_o be_v speak_v against_o or_o not_o reckon_v in_o their_o canon_n and_o confession_n it_o will_v follow_v that_o either_o they_o can_v make_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n or_o at_o lest_o can_v pretend_v these_o to_o be_v article_n of_o faith_n upon_o the_o stock_n of_o oral_a catholic_a tradition_n for_o this_o can_v be_v at_o all_o if_o the_o catholic_a father_n be_v though_o unequal_o divide_v in_o their_o testimony_n the_o rest_n of_o i._o s._n his_o last_o way_n or_o i_o be_v but_o brag_v and_o indeed_o this_o whole_a appendix_n of_o he_o be_v but_o the_o dregs_o of_o his_o sure-footing_a and_o give_v but_o very_o little_a occasion_n of_o useful_a and_o material_a discourse_n but_o he_o have_v former_o promise_v that_o he_o will_v give_v a_o account_n of_o my_o rely_v on_o scripture_n and_o here_o be_v the_o place_n reserve_v for_o it_o but_o when_o he_o come_v to_o it_o it_o be_v nothing_o at_o all_o but_o a_o revile_v of_o it_o call_v of_o it_o a_o bare_a letter_n unsense_v outward_a character_n ink_n thus_o figure_v in_o a_o book_n but_o whatsoever_o it_o be_v he_o call_v it_o my_o main_n most_o fundamental_a and_o in_o a_o manner_n my_o only_a principle_n though_o he_o according_a to_o his_o usual_a method_n of_o say_v what_o come_v next_o have_v say_v before_o that_o i_o have_v no_o principle_n and_o that_o i_o have_v many_o principle_n all_o that_o he_o add_v afterward_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o same_o talk_n over_o again_o concern_v the_o father_n of_o which_o i_o have_v give_v a_o account_n i_o hope_v full_a enough_o and_o i_o shall_v add_v something_o more_o when_o i_o come_v to_o speak_v concern_v the_o justification_n of_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o protestant_n and_o christian_a religion_n only_o that_o i_o may_v be_v out_o of_o i._o s._n his_o debt_n i_o shall_v make_v it_o appear_v that_o he_o and_o his_o party_n be_v the_o man_n that_o go_v upon_o no_o ground_n that_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n there_o be_v no_o sure-footing_a no_o certain_a acknowledge_v rule_n of_o faith_n but_o while_o they_o call_v for_o a_o assent_n above_o the_o nature_n and_o necessity_n of_o the_o thing_n they_o have_v no_o warrant_n beyond_o the_o great_a uncertainty_n and_o cause_v their_o people_n to_o wander_v that_o i_o may_v borrow_v i._o s._n his_o expression_n in_o the_o very_a sphere_n of_o contingency_n the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o dissuasive_a from_o popery_n the_o first_o book_n section_n i._n of_o the_o church_n show_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n rely_v upon_o no_o certain_a foundation_n for_o their_o faith_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v infallible_o true_a though_o it_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n yet_o this_o be_v not_o a_o infallible_a rule_n to_o they_o for_o several_a reason_n 1._o because_o it_o be_v imperfect_a and_o insufficient_a as_o they_o say_v to_o determine_v all_o matter_n of_o faith_n 2._o because_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o determine_v any_o that_o shall_v be_v question_v not_o only_o because_o its_o authority_n and_o truth_n be_v to_o be_v determine_v by_o something_o else_o that_o must_v be_v before_o it_o but_o also_o because_o its_o sense_n and_o meaning_n must_v be_v find_v out_o by_o something_o after_o it_o and_o not_o he_o that_o write_v or_o speak_v but_o he_o that_o expound_v it_o give_v the_o rule_n so_o that_o scripture_n no_o more_o be_v to_o rule_v we_o than_o matter_n make_v the_o world_n until_o something_o else_o give_v it_o form_n and_o life_n and_o motion_n and_o operative_a power_n it_o be_v but_o iners_fw-la massa_fw-la not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o clod_n of_o earth_n and_o they_o who_o speak_v so_o much_o of_o the_o obscurity_n of_o scripture_n of_o the_o seem_a contradiction_n in_o it_o of_o the_o variety_n of_o reading_n and_o the_o mysteriousness_n of_o its_o manner_n of_o delivery_n can_v but_o little_a trust_n that_o obscure_a dark_a intricate_a and_o at_o last_o imperfect_a book_n for_o a_o perfect_a clear_a rule_n but_o i_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o drive_v they_o out_o of_o this_o fort_n which_o they_o so_o willing_o of_o themselves_o quit_v if_o they_o do_v acknowledge_v scripture_n for_o their_o rule_n all_o controversy_n about_o this_o will_v be_v at_o a_o end_n and_o we_o shall_v all_o be_v agree_v but_o because_o they_o do_v not_o they_o can_v claim_v no_o title_n here_o that_o which_o they_o pretend_v to_o be_v the_o infallible_a judge_n and_o the_o measure_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o be_v to_o give_v we_o our_o rule_n be_v the_o church_n and_o she_o be_v a_o rock_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n and_o therefore_o here_o they_o fix_v now_o how_o little_a assurance_n they_o have_v by_o this_o confidence_n will_v appear_v by_o many_o consideration_n 1._o it_o ought_v to_o be_v know_v and_o agree_v upon_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o this_o word_n church_n or_o ecclesia_fw-la for_o it_o be_v a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o church_n can_v be_v a_o rule_n or_o guide_n if_o it_o be_v not_o know_v what_o you_o mean_v when_o you_o speak_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v suidas_n his_o body_n viz._n mystical_a christ_n call_v his_o church_n among_o the_o greek_n it_o signify_v a_o convention_n or_o assembly_n meet_v together_o for_o public_a employment_n and_o affair_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d so_o aristophanes_n understand_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v there_o not_o a_o convocation_n or_o a_o assembly_n call_v for_o this_o plutus_n now_o by_o translation_n this_o word_n be_v use_v among_o christian_n to_o signify_v all_o they_o who_o out_o of_o the_o whole_a mass_n of_o mankind_n be_v call_v and_o come_v and_o be_v gather_v together_o by_o the_o voice_n and_o call_v of_o god_n to_o
the_o worship_n of_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o participation_n of_o eternal_a good_a thing_n to_o follow_v so_o that_o the_o church_n be_v a_o company_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n profess_v the_o save_a doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ._n this_o be_v the_o church_n in_o sensu_fw-la forensi_fw-la and_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n but_o because_o glorious_a thing_n be_v speak_v of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n the_o professor_n of_o christ_n doctrine_n be_v but_o imperfect_o and_o inchoative_o the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o they_o who_o be_v indeed_o holy_a and_o obedient_a to_o christ_n law_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n that_o live_v according_a to_o his_o law_n and_o walk_v by_o his_o example_n these_o be_v true_o and_o perfect_o the_o church_n and_o they_o have_v this_o signature_n god_n know_v who_o be_v he_o these_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o the_o eye_n and_o heart_n of_o god_n for_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o mere_a profession_n of_o christianity_n make_v no_o man_n a_o member_n of_o christ_n nither_o circumcision_n nor_o uncircumcision_n avail_v any_o thing_n in_o christ_n jesus_n nothing_o but_o a_o new_a creature_n nothing_o but_o a_o faith_n work_v by_o love_n and_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n now_o they_o that_o do_v this_o be_v not_o know_v to_o be_v such_o by_o man_n but_o they_o be_v only_o know_v to_o god_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v in_o a_o true_a sense_n the_o invisible_a church_n not_o that_o there_o be_v two_o church_n or_o two_o society_n in_o separation_n from_o each_o other_o or_o that_o one_o can_v be_v see_v by_o man_n and_o the_o other_o can_v for_o then_o either_o we_o must_v run_v after_o the_o church_n who_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o imitate_v or_o be_v blind_a in_o pursuit_n of_o the_o other_o that_o can_v never_o be_v find_v and_o our_o eye_n serve_v for_o nothing_o but_o to_o run_v after_o false_a fire_n no_o these_o two_o church_n be_v but_o one_o society_n the_o one_o be_v within_o the_o other_o they_o walk_z together_o to_o the_o house_n of_o god_n as_o friend_n they_o take_v sweet_a counsel_n together_o and_o eat_v the_o bread_n of_o god_n in_o common_a but_o yet_o though_o the_o man_n be_v visible_a yet_o that_o quality_n and_o excellency_n by_o which_o they_o be_v constitute_v christ_n member_n and_o distinguish_v from_o mere_a professor_n and_o outside_n of_o christian_n this_o i_o say_v be_v not_o visible_a all_o that_o real_o and_o hearty_o serve_v christ_n in_o abdito_fw-la do_v also_o profess_v to_o do_v so_o they_o serve_v he_o in_o the_o secret_a of_o the_o heart_n and_o in_o the_o secret_a chamber_n and_o in_o the_o public_a assembly_n unless_o by_o a_o intervening_a cloud_n of_o persecution_n they_o be_v for_o a_o while_n hide_v and_o make_v less_o conspicuous_a but_o the_o invisible_a church_n ordinary_a and_o regular_o be_v part_n of_o the_o visible_a but_o yet_o that_o only_a part_n that_o be_v the_o true_a one_o and_o the_o rest_n but_o by_o denomination_n of_o law_n and_o in_o common_a speak_n be_v the_o church_n not_o in_o mystical_a union_n not_o in_o proper_a relation_n to_o christ_n they_o be_v not_o the_o house_n of_o god_n not_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n not_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n and_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v this_o hypocrite_n be_v not_o christ_n servant_n and_o therefore_o not_o christ_n member_n and_o therefore_o no_o part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o improper_o and_o equivocal_o as_o a_o dead_a man_n be_v a_o man_n all_o which_o be_v perfect_o sum_v up_o in_o those_o word_n of_o s._n austin_n 22_o de_fw-fr doctr_n christ._n lib._n 3._o cap_n 22_o say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o bipartitum_fw-la it_o be_v not_o a_o double_a body_n non_fw-la enim_fw-la revera_fw-la domini_fw-la corpus_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la cum_fw-la illo_fw-la non_fw-la erit_fw-la in_o aeternum_fw-la all_o that_o be_v christ_n body_n shall_v reign_v with_o christ_n for_o ever_o and_o therefore_o they_o who_o be_v of_o their_o father_n the_o devil_n be_v the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n and_o of_o such_o be_v not_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o all_o this_o be_v no_o more_o than_o what_o s._n paul_n say_v 6._o rom._n 9_o 6._o they_o be_v not_o all_o israel_n who_o be_v of_o israel_n 29._o rom._n 2._o 28_o 29._o and_o he_o be_v not_o a_o jew_n that_o be_v one_o outward_o but_o he_o be_v a_o jew_n that_o be_v one_o inward_o now_o if_o any_o part_n of_o mankind_n will_v agree_v to_o call_v the_o universality_n of_o professor_n by_o the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n they_o may_v if_o they_o will_v any_o word_n by_o consent_n may_v signify_v any_o thing_n but_o if_o by_o church_n we_o mean_v that_o society_n which_o be_v real_o join_v to_o christ_n which_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o be_v heir_n of_o the_o promise_n and_o the_o good_a thing_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o body_n of_o which_o christ_n be_v head_n then_o the_o invisible_a part_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n that_o be_v the_o true_a servant_n of_o christ_n only_o be_v the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o they_o only_o appertain_v the_o spirit_n and_o the_o truth_n the_o promise_n and_o the_o grace_n the_o privilege_n and_o advantage_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o other_o they_o appertain_v as_o the_o promise_n of_o pardon_n do_v that_o be_v when_o they_o have_v make_v themselves_o capable_a for_o since_o it_o be_v plain_a and_o certain_a that_o christ_n promise_n of_o give_v the_o spirit_n to_o his_o apostle_n be_v mere_o conditional_a 16._o joh._n 14._o 15_o 16._o if_o they_o do_v love_v he_o if_o they_o do_v keep_v his_o commandment_n since_o it_o be_v plain_o affirm_v by_o the_o apostle_n that_o by_o reason_n of_o wicked_a life_n man_n and_o woman_n do_v turn_v apostate_n from_o the_o faith_n since_o nothing_o in_o the_o world_n do_v more_o quench_v the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n and_o of_o god_n than_o a_o impure_a life_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v suppose_v that_o the_o church_n as_o it_o signify_v the_o professor_n only_o of_o christianity_n can_v have_v a_o infallible_a spirit_n of_o truth_n if_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v a_o indefectibility_n than_o it_o must_v be_v that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o the_o divine_a favour_n they_o who_o god_n do_v not_o love_n can_v fall_v from_o god_n love_n but_o the_o faithful_a only_o and_o obedient_a be_v belove_v of_o god_n other_o may_v believe_v right_o but_o so_o do_v the_o devil_n who_o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o church_n but_o prince_n of_o ecclesia_fw-la malignantium_fw-la and_o it_o will_v be_v a_o strange_a proposition_n which_o affirm_v any_o one_o to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n for_o no_o other_o reason_n but_o such_o as_o qualify_v the_o devil_n to_o be_v so_o too_o for_o there_o be_v no_o other_o difference_n between_o the_o devil_n faith_n and_o the_o faith_n of_o a_o man_n that_o live_v wicked_o but_o that_o there_o be_v hope_n the_o wicked_a man_n may_v by_o his_o faith_n be_v convert_v to_o holiness_n of_o life_n and_o consequent_o be_v a_o member_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o church_n which_o the_o devil_n never_o can_v be_v to_o be_v convert_v from_o gentilism_n or_o judaisme_n to_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v a_o excellent_a thing_n but_o it_o be_v therefore_o so_o excellent_a because_o that_o be_v god_n usual_a way_n by_o that_o faith_n to_o convert_v they_o unto_o god_n from_o their_o vain_a conversation_n unto_o holiness_n that_o be_v the_o conversion_n which_o be_v design_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o which_o to_o believe_v mere_o be_v but_o the_o entrance_n and_o introduction_n now_o beside_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o and_o the_o notice_n of_o it_o in_o scripture_n 5._o ephes._n 2._o 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5._o let_v i_o observe_v that_o this_o very_a thing_n be_v in_o itself_o a_o part_n of_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n for_o if_o it_o be_v ask_v what_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n the_o apostle_n creed_n define_v it_o it_o be_v communio_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n that_o be_v the_o communion_n of_o saint_n the_o conjunction_n of_o all_o they_o who_o hearty_o serve_v god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n the_o one_o be_v indeed_o exegetical_a of_o the_o other_o as_o that_o which_o be_v plain_o be_v explicative_a of_o that_o which_o be_v less_o plain_a but_o else_o they_o be_v but_o the_o same_o thing_n which_o appear_v also_o in_o this_o that_o in_o some_o creed_n the_o latter_a word_n be_v leave_v out_o and_o particular_o in_o the_o constantinopolitan_a as_o be_v understand_v to_o be_v in_o effect_n but_o another_o expression_n of_o the_o same_o article_n to_o the_o same_o sense_n exact_o clemens_n of_o
capacity_n of_o be_v catholic_n or_o universal_a for_o that_o which_o have_v no_o distinct_a be_v can_v have_v no_o distinct_a promise_n no_o distinct_a capacity_n but_o the_o promise_n be_v make_v to_o all_o church_n and_o to_o every_o church_n only_o there_o be_v this_o in_o it_o if_o any_o church_n of_o one_o denomination_n shall_v be_v cut_v off_o other_o branch_n shall_v stand_v by_o faith_n and_o still_o be_v in_o the_o vine_n the_o church_n of_o god_n can_v be_v without_o christ_n their_o head_n and_o the_o head_n will_v not_o suffer_v his_o body_n to_o perish_v thus_o i_o understand_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n just_o as_o we_o may_v say_v humane_a understanding_n and_o the_o experience_n of_o mankind_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o true_a philosophy_n but_o there_o be_v no_o such_o abstract_a be_v as_o humane_a understanding_n distinct_a from_o the_o understanding_n of_o all_o individual_a man_n every_o universal_a be_v but_o a_o intentional_a or_o notional_a be_v so_o be_v the_o word_n catholic_n relate_v to_o the_o church_n if_o it_o be_v understand_v as_o something_o separate_v from_o all_o particular_a church_n and_o i_o do_v not_o find_v that_o it_o be_v any_o other_o way_n use_v in_o scripture_n than_o in_o the_o distributive_a sense_n so_o s._n paul_n the_o care_n of_o all_o the_o church_n be_v upon_o i_o that_o be_v he_o be_v the_o apostle_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o so_o i_o teach_v in_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n it_o be_v that_o i_o say_v the_o apostle_n have_v in_o the_o creed_n comprehend_v all_o the_o christian_a world_n all_o the_o the_o congregation_n of_o christ_n servant_n in_o the_o word_n catholic_n but_o then_o 2._o it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o this_o epithet_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v to_o signify_v in_o opposition_n to_o all_o religion_n that_o be_v not_o christian._n the_o imply_v antithesis_fw-la be_v not_o of_o the_o whole_a to_o its_o part_n but_o of_o kind_a to_o kind_n it_o be_v not_o so_o call_v to_o distinguish_v it_o from_o convention_n of_o those_o who_o disagree_v in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n but_o from_o those_o that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o house_n mean_v that_o whatever_o pretence_n of_o religion_n the_o gentile_a temple_n or_o the_o jewish_a synagogue_n can_v make_v truth_n can_v not_o be_v find_v among_o they_o but_o only_o in_o those_o who_o be_v assemble_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n who_o profess_v his_o faith_n and_o be_v of_o the_o christian_a religion_n for_o they_o alone_o can_v true_o pretend_v to_o be_v the_o conserver_n of_o truth_n to_o they_o only_o now_o be_v commit_v the_o oracle_n of_o god_n and_o if_o these_o shall_v fail_v truth_n will_v be_v at_o a_o loss_n and_o not_o be_v find_v in_o any_o other_o assembly_n in_o this_o sense_n s._n paul_n speak_v useful_o and_o intelligible_o for_o if_o the_o several_a convention_n of_o separate_a and_o disagree_a christian_n shall_v call_v themselves_o as_o they_o do_v and_o always_o do_v the_o church_n the_o question_n will_v be_v which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o by_o this_o rule_n you_o be_v never_o the_o near_a to_o know_v where_o truth_n be_v to_o be_v find_v for_o if_o you_o say_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n several_a pretend_v to_o it_o who_o yet_o do_v not_o teach_v the_o truth_n and_o then_o you_o must_v find_v out_o what_o be_v truth_n before_o you_o find_v the_o church_n but_o when_o the_o church_n of_o christian_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o assembly_n of_o jew_n and_o turk_n and_o heathen_n she_o be_v visible_a and_o distinguishable_a and_o notorious_a and_o therefore_o they_o that_o love_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n the_o save_a truth_n that_o make_v we_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n must_v become_v christian_n and_o in_o the_o assembly_n of_o christian_n they_o must_v look_v for_o it_o as_o in_o the_o proper_a repository_n and_o there_o they_o shall_v find_v it_o 3._o but_o than_o it_o be_v also_o considerable_a what_o truth_n that_o be_v of_o which_o the_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n it_o be_v only_o of_o the_o save_a truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o whereby_o they_o be_v make_v member_n of_o christ_n the_o house_n of_o god_n the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n for_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v the_o church_n teacher_n he_o will_v teach_v we_o to_o avoid_v evil_a and_o to_o do_v good_a to_o be_v wise_a and_o simple_a to_o be_v careful_a and_o profitable_a to_o know_v god_n and_o who_o he_o have_v send_v jesus_n christ_n to_o increase_v in_o the_o knowledge_n and_o love_n of_o they_o to_o be_v peaceable_a and_o charitable_a but_o not_o to_o entertain_v ourselves_o and_o our_o weak_a brethren_n with_o doubtful_a disputation_n but_o to_o keep_v close_o to_o the_o foundation_n and_o to_o superstruct_v upon_o that_o a_o holy_a life_n that_o be_v god_n teach_v his_o church_n the_o way_n of_o salvation_n that_o which_o be_v necessary_a and_o that_o which_o be_v useful_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o which_o will_v make_v we_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n but_o in_o this_o school_n we_o be_v not_o teach_v curious_a question_n unedifying_a notion_n to_o untie_v knot_n which_o interest_n and_o vanity_n which_o pride_n and_o covetousness_n have_v introduce_v these_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o devil_n to_o divide_v the_o church_n and_o by_o busy_v they_o in_o that_o which_o profit_v not_o to_o make_v they_o neglect_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n and_o the_o holiness_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o we_o see_v this_o truth_n by_o the_o experience_n of_o above_o 1500_o year_n the_o church_n have_v trouble_v themselves_o with_o infinite_a variety_n of_o question_n &_o divide_v their_o precious_a unity_n &_o destroy_v charity_n and_o instead_o of_o contend_v against_o the_o devil_n and_o all_o his_o crafty_a method_n they_o have_v contend_v against_o one_o another_o and_o excommunicate_v one_o another_o and_o anathematise_v and_o damn_v one_o another_o and_o no_o man_n be_v the_o better_a after_o all_o but_o most_o man_n be_v very_o much_o the_o worse_o and_o the_o church_n be_v in_o the_o world_n still_o divide_v about_o question_n that_o commence_v twelve_o or_o thirteen_o age_n since_o and_o they_o be_v like_a to_o be_v so_o for_o ever_o till_o elias_n come_v which_o show_v plain_o that_o god_n have_v not_o interest_v himself_o in_o the_o revelation_n of_o such_o thing_n and_o that_o he_o have_v give_v we_o no_o mean_n of_o end_v they_o but_o charity_n and_o a_o return_n to_o the_o simple_a way_n of_o faith_n and_o this_o be_v yet_o the_o more_o considerable_a because_o man_n be_v so_o far_o from_o find_v out_o a_o way_n to_o end_v the_o question_n they_o have_v make_v that_o the_o very_a way_n of_o end_v they_o which_o they_o propound_v to_o themselves_o be_v now_o become_v the_o great_a question_n and_o consequent_o themselves_o and_o all_o their_o other_o unnecessary_a question_n be_v indeterminable_a their_o very_a remedy_n have_v increase_v the_o disease_n and_o yet_o we_o may_v observe_v that_o god_n way_n be_v not_o like_o we_o and_o that_o his_o way_n be_v the_o way_n of_o truth_n and_o everlasting_a he_o have_v by_o his_o wise_a providence_n preserve_v the_o plain_a place_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o apostle_n creed_n in_o all_o church_n to_o be_v the_o rule_n and_o measure_n of_o that_o faith_n by_o which_o the_o church_n be_v save_v and_o which_o be_v only_o that_o mean_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o band_n of_o peace_n in_o matter_n of_o belief_n and_o what_o have_v the_o church_n do_v since_o to_o what_o necessary_a truth_n be_v they_o after_o all_o their_o clamper_n advance_v since_o the_o apostle_n leave_v to_o they_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o sound_a form_n of_o word_n and_o doctrine_n what_o one_o great_a thing_n be_v there_o beyond_o this_o in_o which_o they_o all_o agree_v or_o in_o which_o they_o can_v be_v bring_v to_o agree_v he_o that_o wise_o observe_v the_o way_n of_o god_n and_o the_o way_n of_o man_n will_v easy_o perceive_v that_o god_n goodness_n prevail_v over_o all_o the_o malice_n and_o all_o the_o folly_n of_o mankind_n and_o that_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v rely_v upon_o as_o a_o rule_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o way_n of_o peace_n but_o what_o christ_n have_v plain_o teach_v and_o the_o apostle_n from_o he_o for_o he_o alone_o be_v the_o author_n and_o finisher_n of_o our_o faith_n he_o begin_v it_o and_o he_o perfect_v it_o and_o unless_o god_n have_v mighty_o preserve_v it_o we_o have_v spoil_v it_o now_o to_o bring_v all_o this_o home_n to_o the_o
rescind_v abrogate_a by_o contrary_a law_n and_o desuetude_n by_o change_n of_o time_n and_o change_n of_o opinion_n and_o in_o all_o that_o great_a body_n of_o law_n register_v in_o the_o decretum_fw-la and_o the_o decretal_n clementins_n and_o extravagant_n there_o be_v no_o sign_n or_o distinctive_a cognisance_n of_o one_o from_o another_o and_o yet_o some_o of_o they_o be_v regard_v and_o very_o many_o be_v not_o when_o pope_n stephen_n decree_v that_o those_o who_o be_v convert_v from_o heresy_n shall_v not_o be_v rebaptised_a 14._o euseb._n lib._n 7._o hist._n 4._o c._n 3_o &_o 4._o lib._n de_fw-fr unico_fw-la baptis_fw-la c._n 14._o and_o to_o that_o purpose_n write_v against_o s._n cyprian_n in_o the_o question_n and_o declare_v it_o to_o be_v unlawful_a and_o threaten_a excommunication_n to_o they_o that_o do_v it_o as_o s._n austin_n tell_v s._n cyprian_n regard_v it_o not_o but_o he_o and_o a_o council_n of_o fourscore_o bishop_n decree_v it_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v and_o do_v so_o to_o their_o die_a day_n bellarmine_n admit_v all_o this_o to_o be_v true_a but_o say_v that_o pope_n stephen_n do_v not_o declare_v this_o tanquam_fw-la de_fw-la fide_fw-la but_o that_o after_o this_o definition_n it_o be_v free_a to_o every_o one_o to_o think_v as_o they_o listen_v nay_o hoc_fw-la bellar._n lib._n 4._o de_fw-fr pont._n rom._n c._n 7._o sect._n et_fw-la per_fw-la hoc_fw-la that_o though_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o s._n cyprian_n refuse_v to_o obey_v the_o pope_n sentence_n yet_o non_fw-la est_fw-la omninò_fw-la certum_fw-la that_o he_o do_v sin_n mortal_o by_o all_o this_o he_o have_v make_v it_o apparent_a that_o it_o can_v easy_o be_v know_v when_o a_o pope_n do_v define_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la or_o when_o it_o be_v a_o sin_n to_o disobey_v he_o or_o when_o it_o be_v necessary_a he_o shall_v be_v obey_v now_o then_o since_o in_o the_o canon_n law_n there_o be_v so_o very_a many_o decree_n and_o yet_o no_o mark_n of_o difference_n of_o right_a or_o wrong_n necessary_a or_o not_o necessary_a how_o shall_v we_o be_v able_a to_o know_v certain_o in_o what_o state_n or_o condition_n the_o soul_n of_o every_o of_o the_o pope_n subject_n be_v especial_o since_o without_o any_o cognisance_n or_o certain_a mark_n all_o the_o world_n be_v command_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o obey_v the_o pope_n in_o the_o extravagant_a de_fw-fr majoritate_fw-la &_o obedientiâ_fw-la be_v these_o word_n dicimus_fw-la definimus_fw-la pronunciamus_fw-la absolutè_fw-la necessarium_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la omni_fw-la humanae_fw-la creaturae_fw-la subesse_fw-la romano_n pontifici_fw-la now_o when_o can_v it_o be_v think_v that_o a_o pope_n define_v any_o article_n in_o cathedra_fw-la if_o these_o word_n dicimus_fw-la definimus_fw-la pronunciamus_fw-la &_o necessarium_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o declare_v his_o intention_n now_o if_o this_o be_v true_a that_o the_o pope_n say_v this_o he_o say_v true_a or_o false_a if_o false_a how_o sad_a be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o romanist_n who_o be_v affright_v with_o the_o terrible_a threaten_n of_o damnation_n for_o nothing_o and_o if_o it_o be_v true_a what_o become_v of_o the_o soul_n of_o s._n cyprian_a and_o the_o african_a bishop_n pompeium_n epist._n s._n cyprian_n ad_fw-la pompeium_n who_o do_v not_o submit_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o call_v he_o proud_a ignorant_a and_o of_o a_o dark_a and_o wicked_a mind_n seriò_fw-la praecepit_fw-la say_v bellarmine_n he_o serious_o command_v it_o but_o do_v not_o determine_v it_o as_o necessary_a and_o how_o in_o a_o question_n of_o faith_n and_o so_o great_a concern_v this_o distinction_n can_v be_v of_o any_o avail_n can_v never_o be_v know_v and_o can_v never_o be_v prove_v since_o they_o declare_v the_o pope_n sufficient_o to_o be_v of_o that_o faith_n against_o s._n cyprian_n and_o the_o african_n and_o that_o in_o pursuance_n of_o this_o his_o faith_n he_o proceed_v so_o far_o and_o so_o violent_o but_o now_o the_o matter_n be_v grow_v infinite_o worse_o for_o 1._o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n have_v make_v innumerable_a decree_n in_o the_o decretum_fw-la prescript_n in_o l._n benè_fw-la à_fw-la zeno●e_fw-la c._n de_fw-fr quadrien_n prescript_n decretal_n bull_n tax_n constitution_n clementine_n and_o extravagant_n 2._o they_o as_o albericus_n de_fw-fr rosate_fw-it a_o great_a canonist_n affirm_v sometime_o exalt_v their_o constitution_n and_o sometime_o abase_v they_o according_a to_o the_o time_n and_o yet_o 3._o all_o of_o they_o be_v verify_v and_o impose_v under_o the_o same_o sanction_n by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 20._o sess._n 25._o c._n 20._o all_o i_o say_v which_o be_v ever_o make_v in_o favour_n of_o ecclesiastical_a person_n and_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v indeed_o the_o great_a part_n of_o all_o after_o gratian'ss_n decree_n witness_v the_o decretal_n of_o gregory_n the_o 9_o the_o boniface_n the_o 8_o the_o the_o collectio_fw-la diversarum_fw-la constitutionum_fw-la &_o literarum_fw-la romanorum_fw-la pontificum_fw-la and_o the_o decretal_a epistle_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n in_o three_o volume_n beside_o the_o ecloga_fw-la bullarum_fw-la &_o motuum_fw-la propriorum_fw-la all_o this_o be_v not_o only_o a_o intolerable_a burden_n to_o the_o christian_a church_n but_o a_o snare_n to_o conscience_n and_o no_o man_n can_v tell_v by_o all_o this_o that_o be_v before_o he_o whether_o he_o deserve_v love_n or_o hatred_n whether_o he_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o mortal_a sin_n of_o damnation_n or_o salvation_n but_o this_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n more_o than_o this_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o ancient_a canon_n law_n itself_o eni●vero_n decret_n do_v 19_o c._n sic_fw-la omnes_fw-la c._n eni●vero_n sic_fw-la omnes_fw-la sanctiones_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la sedis_fw-la accipiendae_fw-la sunt_fw-la tanquam_fw-la ipsius_fw-la divinâ_fw-la voce_fw-la petri_n firmatae_fw-la and_o again_o ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la quicquid_fw-la statuit_fw-la quicquid_fw-la ordinat_fw-la perpetuò_fw-la quidem_fw-la &_o infragibiliter_fw-la observandum_fw-la est_fw-la all_o man_n must_v at_o all_o time_n with_o all_o submission_n observe_v all_o thing_n whatsoever_o be_v decree_v or_o ordain_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n nay_o licèt_fw-la vix_fw-la ferendum_fw-la although_o what_o that_o holy_a see_v impose_v be_v as_o yet_o scarce_o tolerable_a yet_o let_v we_o bear_v it_o and_o with_o holy_a devotion_n suffer_v it_o say_v the_o canon_n ibid._n ibid._n in_o memoriam_fw-la and_o that_o all_o this_o may_v indeed_o be_v a_o intolerable_a yoke_n the_o canon_n nulli_fw-la fas_fw-la est_fw-la add_v the_o pope_n curse_n and_o final_a threaten_n sit_fw-la ergo_fw-la ruinae_fw-la suae_fw-la dolore_fw-la prostratus_fw-la quisquis_fw-la apostolicis_fw-la voluerit_fw-la contraire_fw-fr decretis_fw-la and_o every_o one_o that_o obey_v not_o the_o apostolical_a decree_n be_v majoris_fw-la excommunicationis_fw-la dejectione_fw-la abjiciendus_fw-la the_o canon_n be_v direct_v particular_o against_o the_o clergy_n and_o the_o gloss_n upon_o this_o canon_n affirm_v that_o he_o who_o deny_v the_o pope_n power_n of_o make_v canon_n viz._n to_o oblige_v the_o church_n be_v a_o heretic_n now_o consider_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o gratian_n be_v concordantia_fw-la discordantiarum_fw-la a_o heap_n or_o bundle_n of_o contrary_a opinion_n doctrine_n and_o rule_n and_o they_o agree_v no_o otherwise_o then_o a_o hyaena_fw-la and_o a_o dog_n catch_v in_o the_o same_o snare_n or_o put_v into_o a_o bag_n and_o that_o the_o decretal_n and_o extravagant_n be_v in_o very_o great_a part_n of_o they_o nothing_o but_o box_n of_o tyranny_n and_o error_n usurpation_n and_o superstition_n only_o that_o upon_o those_o box_n they_o write_v ecclesia_fw-la catholica_fw-la and_o that_o all_o these_o be_v command_v to_o be_v believe_v and_o observe_v respective_o and_o all_o gainsayer_n to_o be_v curse_v and_o excommunicate_v and_o that_o the_o twenty_o part_n of_o they_o be_v not_o know_v to_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o some_o be_v reject_v and_o some_o never_o accept_v and_o some_o slight_v into_o desuetude_n and_o some_o throw_v off_o as_o be_v a_o load_n too_o heavy_a and_o yet_o that_o there_o be_v no_o rule_n to_o discern_v these_o thing_n it_o must_v follow_v that_o matter_n of_o faith_n determine_v and_o record_v in_o the_o canon_n law_n and_o the_o law_n of_o manner_n there_o establish_v and_o the_o matter_n of_o salvation_n and_o damnation_n consequent_a to_o the_o observation_n or_o not_o observation_n of_o they_o must_v needs_o be_v infinite_o uncertain_a and_o no_o man_n can_v from_o their_o ground_n know_v what_o shall_v become_v of_o he_o there_o be_v so_o very_a many_o point_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o so_o many_o decree_n of_o council_n which_o when_o they_o please_v make_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o so_o many_o be_v presumptuous_o by_o private_a doctor_n affirm_v to_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la which_o be_v not_o that_o consider_v that_o the_o common_a people_n be_v not_o teach_v to_o rely_v upon_o the_o plain_a
thing_n we_o can_v certain_o know_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a catholic_n church_n how_o shall_v the_o poor_a roman_a catholic_n be_v at_o rest_n in_o his_o inquiry_n here_o be_v in_o all_o this_o nothing_o but_o uncertainty_n of_o truth_n or_o certainty_n of_o error_n and_o what_o be_v needful_a to_o be_v add_v more_o i_o may_v tire_v myself_o and_o my_o reader_n if_o i_o shall_v enumerate_v all_o that_o be_v very_o considerable_a in_o this_o inquiry_n i_o shall_v not_o therefore_o insist_v upon_o their_o uncertainty_n in_o their_o great_a and_o considerable_a question_n about_o the_o number_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o to_o be_v seven_o be_v with_o they_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o yet_o since_o there_o be_v not_o among_o they_o any_o authentic_a definition_n of_o a_o sacrament_n and_o it_o be_v not_o nor_o can_v be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o tell_v what_o be_v the_o form_n of_o a_o sacrament_n therefore_o it_o be_v impossible_a it_o shall_v be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o tell_v how_o many_o they_o be_v for_o in_o this_o case_n they_o can_v tell_v the_o number_n unless_o they_o know_v for_o what_o reason_n they_o be_v to_o be_v account_v so_o the_o father_n and_o schoolman_n differ_v great_o in_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o sacrament_n and_o consequent_o in_o the_o number_n of_o they_o s._n cyprian_n and_o s._n bernard_n reckon_v wash_v the_o disciple_n foot_n to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o s._n austin_n call_v omnem_fw-la ritunt_fw-la cultus_fw-la divini_fw-la a_o sacrament_n and_o otherwhile_o he_o say_v there_o be_v but_o two_o and_o the_o schoolman_n dispute_v whether_o or_o no_o a_o sacrament_n can_v be_v define_v and_o by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n clandestine_v marriage_n be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o yet_o that_o the_o church_n always_o detest_v they_o which_o indeed_o may_v very_o well_o be_v for_o the_o bless_a eucharist_n be_v a_o sacrament_n but_o yet_o private_a mass_n and_o communion_n the_o ancient_a church_n always_o do_v detest_v except_o in_o the_o case_n of_o necessity_n but_o then_o when_o at_o trent_n they_o declare_v they_o to_o be_v nullity_n it_o will_v be_v very_o hard_a to_o prove_v they_o to_o be_v sacrament_n all_o the_o whole_a affair_n in_o their_o sacrament_n of_o order_n be_v a_o body_n of_o contingent_a proposition_n they_o can_v agree_v where_o the_o apostle_n receive_v their_o several_a order_n by_o what_o form_n of_o word_n and_o whether_o at_o one_o time_n or_o by_o part_n and_o in_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n the_o same_o word_n by_o which_o some_o of_o they_o say_v they_o be_v make_v priest_n they_o general_o expound_v they_o to_o signify_v a_o duty_n of_o the_o laity_n as_o well_o as_o the_o clergy_n hoc_fw-la facite_fw-la which_o signify_v one_o thing_n to_o the_o priest_n and_o another_o to_o the_o people_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v no_o mark_n of_o difference_n they_o can_v agree_v where_o or_o by_o who_o extreme_a unction_n be_v institute_v they_o can_v tell_v whether_o any_o wafer_n be_v actual_o transubstantiate_v because_o they_o never_o can_v know_v by_o divine_a faith_n whether_o the_o suppose_a priest_n be_v a_o real_a priest_n or_o have_v right_a intention_n and_o yet_o they_o certain_o do_v worship_n it_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o uncertainty_n but_o i_o will_v add_v nothing_o more_o but_o this_o what_o wonder_n be_v it_o if_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v uncertain_a when_o they_o can_v dare_v not_o trust_v their_o reason_n or_o their_o sense_n in_o the_o wonderful_a invention_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o when_o many_o of_o their_o wise_a doctor_n profess_v that_o their_o pretend_a infallibility_n do_v final_o rely_v upon_o prudential_a motive_n i_o conclude_v this_o therefore_o with_o the_o word_n of_o s._n austin_n remotis_fw-la ergo_fw-la omnibus_fw-la talibus_fw-la 16._o de_fw-fr vnit._n eccles_n cap._n 16._o etc._n etc._n all_o thing_n therefore_o be_v remove_v let_v they_o demonstrate_v their_o church_n if_o they_o can_v not_o in_o the_o sermon_n and_o rumour_n of_o the_o african_n roman_n not_o in_o the_o council_n of_o their_o bishop_n not_o in_o the_o letter_n of_o any_o disputer_n not_o in_o sign_n and_o deceitful_a miracle_n because_o against_o these_o thing_n we_o be_v warn_v and_o prepare_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o in_o the_o prescript_n of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o psalm_n of_o the_o evangelist_n and_o all_o the_o canonical_a authority_n of_o the_o holy_a book_n and_o that_o be_v my_o next_o undertake_n to_o show_v the_o firmness_n of_o the_o foundation_n and_o the_o great_a principle_n of_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o ireland_n even_o the_o holy_a scripture_n section_n ii_o of_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o salvation_n which_o be_v the_o great_a foundation_n and_o ground_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n this_o question_n be_v between_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o therefore_o it_o suppose_v that_o it_o be_v among_o they_o who_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n be_v agree_v upon_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o they_o be_v so_o be_v deliver_v to_o we_o by_o the_o current_n descend_v testimony_n of_o all_o age_n of_o christianity_n and_o they_o who_o thus_o be_v first_o lead_n into_o this_o belief_n find_v upon_o trial_n great_a after-proof_n by_o argument_n both_o external_a and_o internal_a and_o such_o as_o cause_v a_o perfect_a adhesion_n to_o this_o truth_n that_o they_o be_v god_n word_n a_o adhesion_n i_o say_v so_o perfect_a as_o exclude_v all_o manner_n of_o practical_a doubt_n now_o then_o among_o we_o so_o persuade_v the_o question_n be_v whether_o or_o no_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o sufficient_a rule_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o contain_v in_o they_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n or_o be_v there_o any_o other_o word_n of_o god_n beside_o the_o scripture_n which_o deliver_v any_o point_n of_o faith_n or_o doctrine_n of_o life_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n till_o yesterday_o and_o although_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n affirm_v tradition_n to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o object_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o without_o the_o addition_n of_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n deliver_v by_o tradition_n the_o scripture_n be_v not_o a_o perfect_a rule_n but_o together_o with_o tradition_n they_o be_v yet_o now_o two_o or_o three_o gentleman_n have_v get_v upon_o the_o coach-wheel_n and_o have_v raise_v a_o cloud_n of_o dust_n enough_o to_o put_v out_o the_o eye_n even_o of_o their_o own_o party_n 1546._o vid._n hist._n council_n trident._n sub_fw-la paul_n 3._o a._n d._n 1546._o make_v they_o not_o to_o see_v what_o till_o now_o all_o their_o seer_n tell_v they_o and_o tradition_n be_v not_o only_o a_o suppletory_n to_o the_o deficiency_n of_o scripture_n but_o it_o be_v now_o the_o only_a record_n of_o faith_n but_o because_o this_o be_v too_o bold_a and_o impossible_a a_o attempt_n and_o have_v late_o be_v sufficient_o reprove_v by_o some_o learned_a person_n of_o our_o church_n i_o shall_v therefore_o not_o trouble_v myself_o with_o such_o a_o frontless_a error_n and_o illusion_n but_o speak_v that_o truth_n which_o by_o justify_v the_o scripture_n fullness_n and_o perfection_n will_v overthrow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n deny_v it_o and_z ex_fw-la abundanti_fw-la cast_v down_o this_o new_a mudwall_n throw_v into_o a_o dirty_a heap_n by_o m._n w._n and_o his_o under-dawber_n m._n s._n who_o with_o great_a pleasure_n behold_v and_o wonder_v at_o their_o own_o work_n and_o call_v it_o a_o marble_n building_n 1._o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o full_a and_o sufficient_a rule_n to_o christian_n in_o faith_n and_o manner_n a_o full_a and_o perfect_a declaration_n of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v therefore_o certain_a because_o we_o have_v no_o other_o for_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o ground_n upon_o which_o all_o christian_n believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o same_o ground_n prove_v that_o nothing_o else_o be_v these_o indeed_o have_v a_o testimony_n that_o be_v credible_a as_o any_o thing_n that_o make_v faith_n to_o man_n the_o universal_a testimony_n of_o all_o christian_n in_o respect_n of_o which_o s._n austin_n say_v evangelio_n non_fw-la crederem_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o shall_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v of_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v not_o move_v i_o the_o apostle_n at_o first_o own_a these_o write_n the_o church_n receive_v they_o they_o transmit_v they_o to_o their_o posterity_n they_o ground_v their_o faith_n upon_o they_o they_o prove_v their_o proposition_n by_o they_o by_o they_o
they_o confute_v heretic_n and_o they_o make_v they_o the_o measure_n of_o right_a and_o wrong_n all_o that_o collective_a body_n of_o doctrine_n of_o which_o all_o christian_n consent_o make_v public_a confession_n and_o on_o which_o all_o their_o hope_n of_o salvation_n do_v rely_v be_v all_o contain_v in_o they_o and_o they_o agree_v in_o no_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o plain_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n and_o all_o this_o be_v so_o certain_a that_o we_o all_o profess_v ourselves_o ready_a to_o believe_v any_o other_o article_n which_o can_v pretend_v and_o prove_v itself_o thus_o prove_v thus_o descend_v for_o we_o know_v a_o doctrine_n be_v neither_o more_o nor_o less_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o be_v write_v or_o unwritten_a that_o be_v but_o accidental_a and_o extrinsical_a to_o it_o for_o it_o be_v first_o unwritten_a and_o then_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v write_v only_o when_o it_o be_v write_v it_o be_v better_o conserve_v and_o sure_a transmit_v and_o not_o easy_o alter_v and_o more_o fit_v to_o be_v a_o rule_n and_o indeed_o only_o can_v be_v so_o not_o but_o that_o every_o word_n of_o god_n be_v as_o much_o a_o rule_n as_o any_o word_n of_o god_n but_o we_o be_v sure_a that_o what_o be_v so_o write_v and_o so_o transmit_v be_v god_n word_n whereas_o concern_v other_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o write_v we_o have_v no_o certain_a record_n no_o evident_a proof_n no_o sufficient_a conviction_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o be_v own_a as_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n or_o life_n because_o we_o do_v not_o know_v it_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o any_o doctrine_n which_o be_v offer_v to_o we_o by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o which_o be_v not_o in_o scripture_n be_v prove_v as_o scripture_n be_v we_o receive_v it_o equal_o but_o if_o it_o be_v not_o it_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v according_a to_o the_o degree_n of_o its_o probation_n and_o if_o it_o once_o come_v to_o be_v dispute_v by_o wise_a and_o good_a man_n if_o it_o come_v in_o after_o the_o apostle_n if_o it_o rely_v but_o upon_o a_o few_o testimony_n or_o be_v to_o be_v laborious_o argue_v into_o a_o precarious_a persuasion_n it_o can_v be_v the_o true_a ground_n of_o faith_n and_o salvation_n can_v never_o rely_v upon_o it_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o assumption_n in_o this_o argument_n will_v rely_v upon_o a_o induction_n of_o which_o all_o church_n have_v a_o sufficient_a experience_n there_o be_v in_o no_o church_n any_o one_o instance_n of_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n or_o life_n that_o can_v pretend_v to_o a_o clear_a universal_a tradition_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o first_o and_o of_o all_o age_n and_o church_n but_o only_o the_o doctrine_n contain_v in_o the_o undoubted_a book_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o good_a life_n the_o case_n be_v evident_a and_o certain_a which_o make_v the_o other_o also_o to_o be_v like_o it_o for_o there_o be_v no_o original_a or_o primary_n commandment_n concern_v good_a life_n but_o it_o be_v plain_o and_o notorious_o find_v in_o scripture_n now_o faith_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o good_a life_n upon_o which_o it_o be_v most_o rational_o and_o permanent_o build_v it_o be_v strange_a that_o scripture_n shall_v be_v sufficient_a to_o teach_v we_o all_o the_o whole_a superstructure_n and_o yet_o be_v defective_a in_o the_o foundation_n neither_o do_v we_o doubt_v but_o that_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n speak_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n which_o be_v never_o write_v and_o yet_o those_o few_o only_a that_o be_v write_v be_v by_o the_o divine_a providence_n and_o the_o care_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o the_o first_o and_o all_o descend_a age_n preserve_v to_o we_o and_o make_v our_o gospel_n so_o that_o as_o we_o do_v not_o dispute_v whether_o the_o word_n which_o christ_n speak_v and_o the_o miracle_n he_o do_v and_o be_v not_o write_v be_v as_o holy_a and_o as_o true_a as_o those_o which_o be_v write_v but_o only_o say_v they_o be_v not_o our_o rule_n and_o measure_n because_o they_o be_v unknown_a so_o there_o be_v no_o dispute_n whether_o they_o be_v to_o be_v prefer_v or_o rely_v upon_o as_o the_o write_a or_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n for_o both_o be_v to_o be_v rely_v upon_o and_o both_o equal_o always_o provide_v that_o they_o be_v equal_o know_v to_o be_v so_o but_o that_o which_o we_o say_v be_v that_o there_o be_v many_o which_o be_v call_v tradition_n which_o be_v not_o the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n at_o least_o not_o know_v so_o to_o be_v and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o man_n be_v pretend_v and_o obtrude_v as_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o few_o man_n be_v make_v to_o support_v a_o weight_n as_o great_a as_o that_o which_o rely_v upon_o universal_a testimony_n and_o particular_a tradition_n be_v equal_v to_o universal_a the_o uncertain_a to_o the_o certain_a and_o tradition_n be_v say_v to_o be_v apostolical_a if_o they_o be_v but_o ancient_a and_o if_o they_o come_v from_o we_o know_v not_o who_o they_o be_v say_v to_o come_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o if_o postnate_a they_o be_v call_v primitive_a and_o they_o be_v argue_v and_o laborious_o dispute_v into_o the_o title_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n by_o not_o only_o fallible_a but_o fallacious_a argument_n as_o will_v appear_v in_o the_o follow_a number_n this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n and_o therefore_o 1._o it_o prove_v itself_o because_o there_o can_v be_v no_o proof_n to_o the_o contrary_a since_o the_o elder_n the_o tradition_n be_v the_o more_o likely_a it_o can_v be_v prove_v as_o be_v near_o the_o fountain_n and_o not_o have_v have_v a_o long_a current_n which_o as_o a_o long_a line_n be_v always_o the_o weak_a so_o in_o long_a descent_n be_v most_o likely_a to_o be_v corrupt_v and_o therefore_o a_o late_a tradition_n be_v one_o of_o the_o worst_a argument_n in_o the_o world_n it_o follow_v that_o nothing_o can_v now_o because_o nothing_o of_o faith_n yet_o have_v be_v sufficient_o prove_v 2._o but_o beside_o this_o consideration_n the_o scripture_n itself_o be_v the_o best_a testimony_n of_o its_o own_o fullness_n and_o sufficiency_n i_o have_v already_o in_o the_o introduction_n against_o i._n s._n prove_v from_o scripture_n that_o all_o necessary_a thing_n of_o salvation_n be_v there_o abundant_o contain_v that_o be_v i_o have_v prove_v that_o scripture_n say_v so_o neither_o ought_v it_o to_o be_v reply_v here_o that_o no_o man_n testimony_n concern_v himself_o be_v to_o be_v accept_v for_o here_o we_o suppose_v that_o we_o be_v agree_v that_o the_o scripture_n say_v true_a that_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o can_v be_v deceive_v and_o if_o this_o be_v allow_v the_o scripture_n then_o can_v give_v testimony_n concern_v itself_o and_o so_o can_v any_o man_n if_o you_o allow_v he_o to_o be_v infallible_a and_o all_o that_o he_o say_v to_o be_v true_a which_o be_v the_o case_n of_o scripture_n in_o the_o present_a controversy_n and_o if_o you_o will_v not_o allow_v scripture_n to_o give_v testimony_n to_o itself_o who_o shall_v give_v testimony_n to_o it_o shall_v the_o church_n or_o the_o pope_n suppose_v which_o we_o will_v but_o who_o shall_v give_v testimony_n to_o they_o shall_v they_o give_v credit_n to_o scripture_n before_o it_o be_v know_v how_o they_o come_v themselves_o to_o be_v credible_a if_o they_o be_v not_o credible_a of_o themselves_o we_o be_v not_o the_o near_a for_o their_o give_v their_o testimony_n to_o the_o scripture_n but_o if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v of_o itself_o credible_a upon_o its_o own_o authority_n this_o must_v be_v prove_v before_o it_o can_v be_v admit_v and_o then_o how_o shall_v this_o be_v prove_v and_o at_o least_o the_o scripture_n will_v be_v pretend_v to_o be_v of_o itself_o credible_a as_o the_o church_n and_o since_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o all_o the_o dignity_n power_n authority_n office_n and_o sanctity_n it_o have_v or_o pretend_v to_o have_v can_v no_o other_o way_n be_v prove_v but_o by_o the_o scripture_n a_o conformity_n to_o they_o in_o all_o doctrine_n law_n and_o manner_n be_v the_o only_a charter_n by_o which_o she_o claim_v it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o scripture_n have_v the_o prior_n right_a and_o can_v better_o be_v primely_a credible_a than_o the_o church_n or_o any_o thing_n else_o that_o claim_v from_o scripture_n nay_o therefore_o quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la it_o be_v to_o be_v allow_v to_o be_v primely_a credible_a because_o there_o be_v no_o creature_n beside_o it_o that_o be_v so_o indeed_o god_n be_v please_v to_o find_v out_o way_n to_o prove_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v his_o word_n his_o immediate_a word_n by_o miraculous_a consignation_n and_o
to_o come_v but_o christ_n be_v the_o substance_n and_o yet_o after_o all_o this_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o lord's-day_n be_v no_o law_n in_o christendom_n till_o the_o laodicean-council_n but_o the_o jewish_a sabbath_n be_v keep_v as_o strict_o as_o the_o chrisian_a lord's-day_n and_o yet_o both_o of_o they_o with_o liberty_n but_o with_o a_o intuition_n to_o the_o avoid_v offence_n and_o the_o interest_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o lord's-day_n come_v not_o in_o stead_n of_o the_o sabbath_n and_o it_o do_v not_o succeed_v in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o sabbath_n but_o be_v mere_o a_o christian_a festival_n and_o holy_a day_n but_o at_o last_o that_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o lord's-day_n be_v a_o tradition_n apostolical_a i_o desire_v it_o be_v hearty_o believe_v by_o every_o christian_a for_o though_o it_o will_v make_v nothing_o against_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o scripture_n in_o all_o question_n of_o faith_n and_o rule_v of_o manner_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v a_o engagement_n on_o all_o man_n to_o keep_v it_o with_o the_o great_a religion_n 6._o at_o the_o end_n of_o this_o it_o be_v fit_a i_o take_v notice_n of_o another_o particular_a offer_v by_o the_o by_o not_o in_o justification_n of_o tradition_n but_o in_o defiance_n of_o they_o that_o oppose_v it_o if_o the_o protestant_n oppose_v all_o tradition_n in_o general_n 5._o e._n w._n p._n 5._o they_o must_v quit_v every_o tenet_n of_o protestant_a religion_n as_o protestantism_n for_o example_n sake_n the_o belief_n of_o two_o sacrament_n only_o etc._n etc._n the_o charge_n be_v fierce_a and_o the_o stroke_n be_v little_a it_o be_v unadvised_o say_v that_o every_o protestant_a doctrine_n quâ_fw-la talis_fw-la must_v be_v quit_v if_o scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n for_o this_o very_a proposition_n that_o scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v a_o main_a protestant_a doctrine_n and_o therefore_o certain_o must_v not_o be_v quit_v if_o scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n that_o be_v if_o the_o doctrine_n be_v true_a it_o must_v not_o be_v forsake_v and_o although_o in_o the_o whole_a progress_n of_o this_o book_n protestant_n religion_n will_v be_v great_o justify_v by_o scripture_n yet_o for_o the_o present_a i_o desire_v the_o gentleman_n to_o consider_v a_o little_a better_o about_o give_v the_o chalice_n to_o all_o communicant_n whether_o their_o deny_v it_o to_o the_o laity_n be_v by_o authority_n of_o scripture_n and_o i_o desire_v he_o to_o consider_v what_o place_n of_o the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n he_o have_v for_o worship_v and_o make_v the_o image_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o for_o have_v their_o public_a devotion_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n but_o of_o these_o hereafter_o as_o to_o the_o instance_n of_o two_o sacrament_n only_o i_o desire_v the_o gentleman_n to_o understand_v our_o doctrine_n a_o little_a better_o it_o be_v none_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o there_o be_v two_o sacrament_n only_o but_o that_o of_o those_o ritual_n command_v in_o scripture_n which_o the_o ecclesiastical_a use_n call_v sacrament_n by_o a_o word_n of_o art_n two_o only_a be_v general_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o although_o we_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v this_o by_o a_o tradition_n much_o more_o universal_a than_o by_o which_o the_o roman_a doctor_n can_v prove_v seven_o yet_o we_o rely_v upon_o scripture_n for_o our_o doctrine_n and_o though_o it_o may_v be_v i_o shall_v not_o dispute_v it_o with_o this_o gentleman_n that_o send_v his_o chartel_n unless_o he_o have_v give_v better_a proof_n of_o his_o learning_n and_o his_o temper_n yet_o i_o suppose_v if_o he_o read_v this_o book_n over_o he_o shall_v find_v something_o first_o or_o last_o to_o instruct_v he_o or_o at_o least_o to_o entertain_v he_o in_o that_o particular_a also_o but_o for_o the_o present_a lest_o such_o a_o unconcern_v trifle_n be_v forget_v i_o desire_v he_o to_o consider_v that_o he_o have_v little_a reason_n to_o concern_v himself_o in_o the_o just_a number_n of_o seven_o sacrament_n for_o that_o there_o be_v bring_v in_o among_o they_o some_o new_a device_n i_o can_v call_v they_o sacrament_n but_o something_o like_o what_o they_o have_v already_o forge_v which_o be_v but_o external_a rite_n yet_o outdo_v most_o of_o their_o sacrament_n about_o the_o year_n 1630._o there_o be_v introduce_v into_o ireland_n by_o the_o franciscan_n and_o carmelite_n friar_n three_o pretty_a proposition_n 1._o whosoever_o shall_v die_v in_o the_o habit_n of_o s._n francis_n shall_v never_o be_v prevent_v with_o a_o unhappy_a death_n 2._o whosoever_o shall_v take_v the_o scapular_a of_o the_o carmelites_n and_o die_v in_o the_o same_o shall_v never_o be_v damn_v 3._o whosoever_o shall_v fast_v the_o first_o saturday_n after_o they_o have_v hear_v of_o the_o death_n of_o luissa_n a_o spanish_a nun_n of_o the_o order_n of_o s._n clare_n shall_v have_v no_o part_n in_o the_o second_o death_n now_o these_o external_a rite_n promise_v more_o grace_n than_o be_v confer_v by_o their_o sacrament_n for_o it_o promise_v a_o certainty_n of_o glory_n and_o a_o intermediat_a certainty_n of_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n which_o to_o they_o be_v not_o and_o can_v be_v do_v according_a to_o their_o doctrine_n by_o all_o the_o other_o sacrament_n and_o sacramental_n of_o their_o church_n now_o these_o thing_n be_v derive_v to_o they_o by_o pretend_a revelation_n of_o s._n francis_n and_o s._n simon_n stoc._n and_o though_o i_o know_v not_o what_o the_o priest_n and_o friar_n in_o england_n will_v think_v or_o say_v of_o this_o matter_n yet_o i_o assure_v they_o in_o ireland_n they_o be_v of_o great_a account_n and_o with_o much_o fancy_n religion_n and_o veneration_n use_v at_o this_o day_n and_o not_o long_o since_o visit_v some_o of_o my_o church_n i_o find_v a_o old_a nun_n in_o the_o neighbourhood_n a_o poor_a clare_n as_o i_o think_v but_o miss_v her_o cord_n about_o she_o which_o i_o have_v former_o observe_v she_o to_o wear_v i_o ask_v the_o cause_n and_o be_v free_o answer_v that_o a_o gentlewoman_n who_o have_v late_o die_v have_v purchase_v it_o of_o she_o to_o put_v about_o she_o in_o her_o grave_n and_o of_o how_o great_a veneration_n the_o saturday-fast_a be_v here_o every_o one_o know_v but_o the_o cause_n i_o know_v not_o till_o i_o have_v learn_v the_o story_n of_o s._n luissa_n and_o that_o fleming_n their_o archbishop_n of_o dublin_n have_v give_v countenance_n to_o it_o by_o his_o example_n and_o credulity_n but_o now_o it_o may_v be_v perceive_v that_o the_o question_n of_o seven_o sacrament_n be_v outdo_v by_o the_o intervention_n of_o some_o new_a one_o which_o although_o they_o want_v the_o name_n do_v great_a effect_n and_o therefore_o have_v a_o better_a title_n but_o i_o proceed_v to_o more_o material_a consideration_n cardinal_n perron_n have_v choose_v no_o other_o instance_n of_o matter_n necessary_a as_o he_o suppose_v they_o but_o there_o be_v many_o ritual_a matter_n custom_n and_o ceremony_n which_o be_v at_o least_o it_o be_v say_v so_o practise_v by_o the_o apostolical_a church_n and_o some_o it_o may_v be_v be_v descend_v down_o to_o we_o but_o because_o the_o church_n practise_v many_o thing_n which_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o and_o the_o apostle_n do_v and_o ordain_v many_o thing_n which_o the_o church_n do_v not_o observe_v it_o will_v not_o appertain_v to_o the_o question_n to_o say_v there_o be_v or_o be_v not_o in_o these_o thing_n tradition_n apostolical_a the_o college_n of_o widow_n be_v dissolve_v the_o canon_n of_o abstain_v from_o thing_n strangle_v 6._o vide_fw-la ductor_n dub_v tantium_fw-la rule_n of_o conscience_n lib._n 3._o reg._n 11._o n._n 5._o 6._o oblige_v not_o the_o church_n and_o s._n paul_n rule_n of_o not_o elect_v a_o bishop_n that_o be_v a_o novice_n or_o young_a christian_a be_v not_o always_o observe_v at_o rome_n nay_o s._n paul_n himself_o consecrate_v timothy_n when_o he_o be_v but_o twenty_o five_o year_n of_o age_n and_o the_o 133._o the_o regirald_n pra●is_fw-la sori_fw-la pae_fw-la ●i_fw-la l._n ●_o c._n 12._o sect._n 3._o n._n 133._o wednesday_n and_o friday_n fast_o be_v pretend_v to_o have_v be_v a_o precept_n from_o the_o very_a time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v observe_v but_o in_o very_a few_o place_n and_o of_o the_o fifty_o canon_n call_v apostolical_a very_o few_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o church_n at_o this_o day_n and_o of_o 84_o collect_v by_o clement_n as_o be_v suppose_v apost_n de_fw-fr sacr._n h●m_fw-la conti_fw-la l._n 5._o c._n 105._o peres_n de_fw-fr tradi●_fw-la part_n 3._o c._n the_o author_n canon_n apost_n michael_n medina_n say_v scarce_o six_o or_o eight_o be_v observe_v by_o the_o latin_a church_n for_o in_o they_o many_o thing_n be_v contain_v say_v peresius_n which_o by_o the_o corruption_n of_o time_n be_v
bind_v to_o believe_v truth_n which_o be_v not_o matter_n of_o faith_n this_o oblige_v upon_o supposition_n of_o a_o manifest_a discovery_n which_o may_v or_o may_v not_o happen_v but_o in_o the_o other_o case_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o inquire_v and_o all_o of_o we_o must_v be_v instruct_v and_o ever_o man_n must_v assent_v and_o without_o this_o we_o can_v be_v christ_n disciple_n we_o be_v rebel_n if_o we_o oppose_v the_o other_o and_o no_o good_a man_n can_v or_o do_v for_o if_o he_o be_v satisfy_v that_o it_o be_v the_o word_n and_o mind_n of_o god_n he_o must_v and_o will_v believe_v it_o he_o can_v choose_v and_o if_o he_o will_v not_o confess_v it_o when_o he_o think_v god_n bid_v he_o or_o if_o he_o oppose_v it_o when_o he_o think_v god_n speak_v it_o he_o be_v malicious_a and_o a_o villain_n but_o if_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v god_n say_v it_o than_o he_o must_v answer_v for_o more_o than_o he_o know_v or_o than_o he_o ought_v to_o believe_v that_o be_v the_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o we_o be_v not_o subject_n or_o child_n unless_o we_o consent_v to_o these_o the_o other_o can_v come_v into_o the_o common_a account_n of_o mankind_n but_o as_o a_o man_n may_v become_v a_o law_n unto_o himself_o by_o a_o confident_a a_o unnecessary_a and_o even_o a_o false_a persuasion_n because_o even_o a_o err_a conscience_n can_v bind_v so_o much_o more_o can_v god_n become_v a_o law_n unto_o we_o when_o we_o by_o any_o accident_n come_v into_o the_o knowledge_n of_o any_o revelation_n from_o god_n but_o these_o be_v not_o the_o christian_a faith_n in_o the_o strict_a and_o proper_a sense_n that_o be_v these_o be_v not_o the_o foundation_n of_o our_o religion_n many_o a_o man_n be_v a_o good_a christian_n without_o they_o and_o go_v to_o heaven_n though_o he_o know_v nothing_o of_o they_o but_o without_o these_o no_o christian_a can_v be_v save_v now_o then_o the_o apostle_n the_o founder_n of_o christianity_n know_v the_o nature_n design_n efficacy_n and_o purpose_n of_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n select_v such_o proposition_n which_o in_o conjunction_n do_v integrate_a our_o faith_n and_o be_v therefore_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v unto_o salvation_n not_o because_o these_o article_n be_v for_o themselves_o command_v to_o be_v believe_v but_o because_o without_o the_o belief_n of_o they_o we_o can_v not_o obtain_v the_o purpose_n and_o design_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v we_o can_v not_o be_v enable_v to_o serve_v god_n to_o destroy_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o sin_n to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n this_o collect_n or_o symbol_n of_o proposition_n be_v that_o which_o we_o call_v the_o apostle_n creed_n which_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o prove_v to_o have_v be_v always_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n esteem_v a_o full_a and_o perfect_a digest_v of_o all_o the_o necessary_a and_o fundamental_a article_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o that_o beyond_o this_o the_o christian_a faith_n or_o the_o foundation_n be_v not_o to_o be_v extend_v but_o this_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o whole_a complexion_n necessary_a so_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o all_o man_n unto_o salvation_n s._n paul_n give_v we_o the_o first_o formal_a intimation_n of_o this_o measure_n 13._o 2_o tim._n 1._o 13._o in_o his_o advice_n to_o s._n timothy_n hold_v fast_o the_o form_n of_o sound_a word_n which_o thou_o have_v hear_v of_o i_o in_o faith_n and_o love_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n that_o good_a thing_n which_o be_v commit_v unto_o thou_o keep_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o dwell_v in_o we_o this_o be_v the_o depositum_fw-la that_o s._n paul_n leave_v with_o timothy_n the_o hypotyposis_n or_o summary_n of_o christian_a belief_n the_o christian_a creed_n which_o s._n paul_n oppose_v to_o the_o profane_a new_a talk_n 20._o 1_o tim._n 6._o 20._o and_o the_o disputation_n of_o pretend_a learning_n meaning_n that_o this_o symbol_n of_o faith_n be_v the_o thing_n on_o which_o all_o christian_n be_v to_o rely_v and_o this_o be_v the_o measure_n of_o their_o faith_n other_o thing_n it_o be_v odds_n but_o they_o be_v babble_n and_o profane_a quarrel_v and_o unedifying_a argumentation_n s._n ignatius_n recite_v the_o substance_n of_o this_o creed_n in_o four_o of_o the_o epistle_n usual_o attribute_v to_o he_o eph●sio_n epist_n 3._o ad_fw-la magnes_n &_o 5._o add_v philipp_n &_o 7._o ad_fw-la smyrnens_fw-la &_o 11._o add_v eph●sio_n some_o of_o which_o be_v witness_v by_o eusebius_n and_o s._n hierom_n and_o add_v at_o the_o end_n of_o it_o this_o epiphonema_n haee_fw-la qui_fw-la planè_fw-la cognôrit_fw-la &_o crediderit_fw-la beatus_fw-la est_fw-la and_o s._n irenaeus_n recite_v the_o same_o creed_n or_o form_n of_o word_n differ_v only_o in_o order_n of_o place_v they_o 2._o s._n irenaeus_n lib._n 1._o ca_fw-mi ●_o 2._o but_o just_o the_o same_o article_n and_o foundation_n of_o faith_n affirm_v that_o this_o be_v the_o faith_n which_o the_o catholic_n church_n to_o the_o very_a end_n of_o the_o earth_n have_v receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o disciple_n and_o this_o be_v that_o tradition_n apostolical_a of_o which_o the_o church_n of_o old_a do_v so_o much_o glory_n and_o to_o which_o with_o so_o much_o confidence_n they_o appeal_v and_o by_o which_o they_o provoke_v the_o heretic_n to_o trial_n 3._o et._n cap._n 3._o this_o preach_v and_o this_o faith_n when_o the_o church_n scatter_v over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o world_n have_v receive_v she_o keep_v diligent_o as_o dwell_v in_o one_o house_n and_o believe_v as_o have_v one_o soul_n and_o one_o heart_n and_o preach_v and_o teach_v and_o deliver_v these_o thing_n as_o possess_v one_o mouth_n for_o although_o there_o be_v divers_a speech_n in_o the_o world_n yet_o the_o force_n of_o the_o tradition_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o neither_o do_v the_o church_n found_v in_o germany_n believe_v otherwise_o aut_fw-la aliter_fw-la tradunt_fw-la or_o have_v any_o other_o tradition_n nor_o the_o iberian_a church_n or_o those_o among_o the_o celtae_n nor_o the_o church_n in_o the_o east_n in_o egypt_n or_o in_o lybia_n nor_o those_o which_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o world_n but_o he_o add_v that_o this_o be_v not_o only_o for_o the_o ignorant_a the_o idiot_n or_o catechumeni_fw-la but_o neither_o he_o who_o be_v most_o eloquent_a among_o the_o bishop_n can_v say_v any_o other_o thing_n than_o these_o for_o no_o man_n be_v above_o his_o master_n neither_o have_v he_o that_o be_v the_o low_a in_o speak_v lessen_v the_o tradition_n for_o the_o faith_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o he_o that_o can_v speak_v much_o can_v speak_v no_o more_o and_o he_o that_o speak_v little_a say_v no_o less_o this_o creed_n also_o he_o recite_v again_o affirm_v that_o even_o those_o nation_n who_o have_v not_o yet_o receive_v the_o book_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n yet_o by_o this_o confession_n and_o this_o creed_n sunt_fw-la lib_fw-la 3_o cap._n 4._o propter_fw-la fidem_fw-la per_fw-la quam_fw-la sapientissimi_fw-la sunt_fw-la do_v please_v god_n and_o be_v most_o wise_a through_o faith_n for_o this_o be_v that_o which_o he_o call_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o be_v of_o that_o truth_n which_o the_o apostle_n teach_v the_o church_n and_o by_o the_o actual_a retention_n of_o which_o truth_n it_o be_v that_o the_o church_n be_v right_o call_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n by_o s._n paul_n 62._o lib._n 4._o cap._n 62._o and_o in_o relation_n to_o this_o s._n irenaeus_n reckon_v it_o to_o be_v all_o one_o extra_fw-la veritatem_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la extra_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la upon_o this_o collect_n of_o truth_n the_o church_n be_v found_v and_o upon_o this_o it_o be_v build_v up_o and_o in_o this_o all_o the_o apostolical_a church_n do_v hope_n for_o life_n eternal_a and_o by_o this_o they_o oppose_v all_o schism_n and_o heresy_n as_o know_v what_o their_o and_o our_o great_a master_n himself_o say_v in_o his_o last_o sermon_n 3._o john_n 17._o 3._o this_o be_v life_n eternal_a to_o know_v thou_o the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o who_o thou_o have_v send_v jesus_n christ._n this_o also_o be_v most_o large_o teach_v by_o tertullian_n 14._o tertul_n de_fw-fr prescript_n adv_fw-la haer●t_fw-la c._n 13._o &_o 14._o who_o when_o he_o have_v recite_v the_o apostolical_a creed_n in_o the_o word_n and_o form_n the_o church_n then_o use_v it_o call_v it_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n he_o affirm_v this_o rule_n to_o have_v be_v institute_v by_o christ_n he_o affirm_v that_o it_o admit_v of_o no_o question_n and_o have_v none_o but_o those_o which_o the_o heresy_n bring_v in_o and_o which_o indeed_o make_v heretic_n but_o this_o form_n remain_v in_o its_o order_n you_o may_v seek_v and_o handle_v and_o pour_v out_o all_o the_o desire_n of_o curiosity_n if_o any_o thing_n seem_v
divest_v the_o church_n from_o the_o simplicity_n of_o her_o faith_n be_v like_o remove_v the_o ancient_a landmark_n you_o can_v tell_v by_o the_o mark_n in_o what_o country_n you_o be_v in_o whether_o in_o your_o own_o or_o in_o the_o enemy_n and_o in_o the_o world_n nothing_o be_v more_o unnecessary_a for_o if_o that_o faith_n be_v sufficient_a if_o in_o that_o faith_n the_o church_n go_v to_o heaven_n if_o in_o that_o she_o preserve_v unity_n and_o beget_v child_n to_o christ_n and_o nurse_v they_o up_o to_o be_v perfect_a man_n in_o christ_n and_o keep_v herself_o pure_a from_o heresy_n and_o unbroken_a by_o schism_n whatsoever_o be_v add_v to_o it_o be_v either_o contain_v in_o the_o article_n virtual_o or_o it_o be_v not_o if_o not_o than_o it_o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o by_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n there_o be_v no_o obligation_n pass_v upon_o any_o man_n to_o believe_v it_o but_o if_o it_o be_v than_o he_o that_o believe_v the_o article_n do_v virtual_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v virtual_o contain_v in_o it_o but_o no_o man_n be_v to_o be_v press_v with_o the_o consequent_n draw_v from_o thence_o unless_o the_o transcript_n be_v draw_v by_o the_o same_o hand_n that_o write_v the_o original_a for_o we_o be_v sure_a it_o come_v in_o the_o simplicity_n of_o it_o from_o a_o infallible_a spirit_n but_o he_o that_o bid_v i_o believe_v his_o deduction_n under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n bid_v i_o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n believe_v that_o he_o be_v a_o unerring_a logician_n for_o which_o because_o god_n have_v give_v i_o no_o command_n and_o himself_o can_v give_v i_o no_o security_n if_o i_o can_v defend_v myself_o from_o that_o man_n pride_n god_n will_v defend_v i_o from_o damnation_n but_o let_v we_o see_v a_o little_a further_o with_o what_o constancy_n that_o and_o the_o follow_a age_n of_o the_o church_n do_v adhere_v to_o the_o apostle_n creed_n as_o the_o sufficient_a and_o perfect_a rule_n of_o faith_n there_o be_v a_o imperial_a edict_n of_o gratian_n valentinian_n and_o theodosius_n cunctos_fw-la populos_fw-la quos_fw-la clementiae_fw-la nostrae_fw-la regit_fw-la imperium_fw-la in_fw-la eâ_fw-la volumus_fw-la religione_fw-la versari_fw-la quam_fw-la divinum_fw-la petrum_fw-la apostolum_n tradidisse_fw-la romanis_n religio_fw-la usque_fw-la nunc_fw-la ab_fw-la ipso_fw-la insi_fw-fr nuata_fw-la declarat_fw-la quámque_fw-la pontificem_fw-la damasum_fw-la sequi_fw-la claret_n &_o petrum_fw-la alexandria_n episcopum_fw-la virum_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la sanctitatis_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la secundum_fw-la apostolicam_fw-la disciplinam_fw-la evangelicamque_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la patris_fw-la &_o filii_fw-la &_o spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la unam_fw-la deitatem_fw-la sub_fw-la pari_fw-la majestate_fw-la &_o sub_fw-la piâ_fw-la trinitate_fw-la credamus_fw-la hanc_fw-la legem_fw-la sequentes_fw-la christianorum_fw-la catholicorum_n nomen_fw-la jubemus_fw-la amplecti_fw-la reliquos_fw-la verò_fw-la demente_n vesanósque_fw-la judicantes_fw-la haeretici_fw-la dogmatis_fw-la infamiam_fw-la sustinere_fw-la divina_fw-la primùm_fw-la vindictâ_fw-la pòst_fw-la etiam_fw-la motu_fw-la animi_fw-la nostri_fw-la quem_fw-la ex_fw-la coelesti_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la sumpserimus_fw-la ultione_fw-la plectendos_fw-la part_v of_o this_o be_v cite_v in_o the_o dissuasive_a to_o prove_v that_o in_o the_o early_a age_n of_o the_o church_n the_o christian_a faith_n be_v much_o more_o simple_a than_o it_o be_v now_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n 4._o the_o letter_n to_o a_o friend_n p._n 4._o and_o that_o upon_o easy_a term_n man_n may_v then_o be_v catholic_n it_o be_v reply_v by_o some_o one_o of_o the_o opponent_n that_o by_o this_o law_n be_v not_o mean_v that_o all_o who_o believe_v the_o trinity_n be_v catholic_n absolute_o but_o only_o as_o to_o those_o point_n and_o the_o reason_n give_v be_v this_o because_o after_o this_o law_n the_o novatian_o donatist_n nestorian_n eutychian_o etc._n etc._n be_v proceed_v against_o as_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n notwithstanding_o their_o belief_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n but_o this_o thing_n be_v speak_v without_o all_o care_n whether_o it_o be_v to_o the_o purpose_n or_o no._n for_o when_o this_o law_n be_v make_v that_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o catholicism_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n and_o if_o afterward_o it_o become_v alter_v and_o the_o bishop_n become_v too_o opinionative_n or_o think_v themselves_o force_v into_o further_a declaration_n must_v therefore_o the_o precedent_a law_n be_v judge_v ex_fw-la post_fw-la facto_fw-la by_o what_o they_o do_v afterward_o it_o may_v as_o well_o have_v be_v say_v the_o church_n be_v never_o content_a with_o the_o apostle_n creed_n because_o afterward_o the_o lutheran_n and_o calvinist_n and_o zwinglians_n etc._n etc._n be_v proceed_v against_o as_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n notwithstanding_o their_o belief_n of_o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n exit_fw-la post_fw-la facto_fw-la nunquam_fw-la crescit_fw-la praeteriti_fw-la aestimatio_fw-la say_v the_o law_n but_o for_o the_o true_a understanding_n of_o this_o imperial_a law_n we_o must_v know_v that_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n and_o unity_n be_v not_o set_v down_o there_o as_o a_o single_a article_n but_o as_o a_o summary_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n the_o three_o part_n of_o which_o have_v for_o their_o head_n the_o three_o person_n of_o the_o holy_a and_o undivided_a trinity_n and_o this_o appear_v by_o the_o relation_n the_o law_n make_v to_o the_o faith_n saint_n peter_n teach_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o the_o creed_n of_o damasus_n which_o may_v be_v see_v in_o saint_n hierom_n who_o reject_v the_o creed_n of_o that_o worthy_a prelate_n in_o the_o second_o tome_n of_o his_o work_n in_o which_o the_o apostolical_a creed_n be_v explicate_v that_o what_o relate_v to_o the_o trinity_n and_o unity_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o imperial_a law_n or_o rule_n of_o catholic_n and_o christian_n be_v set_v down_o in_o its_o full_a purpose_n and_o design_n and_o this_o thing_n may_v better_o be_v understand_v by_o a_o instance_n in_o the_o catechism_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n for_o when_o the_o catechumen_n have_v at_o large_a recite_v the_o apostle_n creed_n he_o be_v teach_v to_o sum_n it_o up_o in_o this_o manner_n first_o i_o learn_v to_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n who_o have_v make_v i_o and_o all_o the_o world_n second_o in_o god_n the_o son_n who_o have_v redeem_v i_o and_o all_o mankind_n three_o in_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o sanctifi_v i_o and_o all_o the_o elect_a people_n of_o god_n this_o be_v the_o summary_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o to_o be_v consider_v as_o article_n distinct_a and_o complete_a and_o integrate_v the_o christian_a faith_n but_o as_o a_o breviary_n of_o that_o faith_n to_o which_o in_o the_o same_o place_n it_o be_v make_v to_o relate_v just_o as_o the_o imperial_a law_n do_v relate_v to_o the_o faith_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o creed_n of_o damasus_n and_o peter_n of_o alexandria_n concern_v which_o he_o that_o say_v much_o say_v no_o more_o and_o he_o that_o say_v little_a say_v no_o less_o for_o the_o faith_n be_v the_o same_o as_o i_o have_v already_o cite_v the_o word_n of_o s._n irenaeus_n since_o then_o the_o emperor_n make_v the_o summary_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o discern_a catholic_n from_o heretic_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n catholic_n signify_v something_o else_o than_o it_o do_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n s._n ambrose_n say_v faith_n be_v conceive_v by_o the_o apostle_n creed_n all_o faith_n lie_v in_o that_o as_o the_o child_n in_o the_o mother_n womb_n and_o he_o compare_v it_o to_o a_o key_n because_o by_o it_o the_o darkness_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v unlock_v that_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n may_v come_v upon_o we_o and_o the_o hide_a sin_n of_o conscience_n be_v open_v that_o the_o manifest_a work_n of_o righteousness_n may_v shine_v this_o key_n be_v to_o be_v show_v to_o our_o brethren_n that_o by_o this_o as_o scholar_n of_o s._n peter_n they_o may_v shut_v the_o gate_n of_o hell_n and_o open_v the_o door_n of_o heaven_n he_o also_o call_v it_o the_o seal_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o our_o warfare_n s._n hierom_n speak_v of_o it_o 9_o epist._n ad_fw-la pammach_n contra_fw-la ●rro_fw-la es_fw-la johan_n hierosolymit_n exp_n si●_n symbol_n c._n 2_o 3._o l._n 6._o orig._n c._n 9_o say_z the_o symbol_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o hope_n which_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o write_v in_o paper_n and_o ink_n but_o in_o the_o fleshy_a table_n of_o our_o heart_n after_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n the_o whole_a or_o every_o sacrament_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v conclude_v with_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n which_o word_n be_v intimate_v and_o in_o part_n transcribe_v by_o isidore_n of_o sevil._n
a_o happy_a resurrection_n to_o eternal_a life_n which_o he_o have_v promise_v to_o we_o by_o his_o son_n and_o which_o we_o shall_v receive_v if_o we_o walk_v in_o the_o spirit_n and_o live_v in_o the_o spirit_n what_o be_v want_v to_o he_o that_o do_v all_o this_o but_o that_o he_o do_v so_o still_o be_v not_o this_o faith_n unto_o righteousness_n and_o the_o confession_n of_o this-faith_n unto_o salvation_n we_o all_o believe_v we_o shall_v arise_v from_o our_o grave_n at_o the_o last_o day_n one_o sort_n of_o christian_n think_v with_o one_o sort_n of_o body_n and_o another_o think_v with_o another_o but_o these_o conjecture_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v account_v necessary_a and_o we_o be_v not_o concern_v to_o dispute_v which_o it_o be_v for_o we_o shall_v never_o know_v by_o all_o our_o dispute_v but_o we_o may_v lose_v the_o good_a of_o it_o if_o we_o make_v it_o a_o argument_n of_o uncharitableness_n but_o beside_o this_o do_v not_o the_o apostle_n desire_v to_o know_v nothing_o but_o christ_n jesus_n and_o he_o crucify_v and_o rise_v again_o and_o do_v not_o they_o preach_v this_o faith_n to_o all_o the_o world_n and_o do_v they_o preach_v any_o other_o but_o severe_o reprove_v all_o curious_a and_o subtle_a question_n and_o all_o pretence_n of_o science_n or_o knowledge_n false_o so_o call_v when_o man_n languish_v about_o question_n and_o strife_n of_o word_n be_v we_o not_o teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o receive_v our_o weak_a brother_n unto_o doubtful_a disputation_n and_o that_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n ought_v not_o to_o strive_v do_v not_o they_o say_v that_o all_o that_o keep_v the_o foundation_n shall_v be_v save_v some_o with_o and_o some_o without_o loss_n and_o that_o err_a brethren_n be_v to_o be_v tolerate_v and_o that_o if_o they_o be_v servant_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n or_o opinion_n otherwise_o mind_v god_n shall_v reveal_v even_o this_o also_o unto_o they_o and_o if_o these_o thing_n be_v thus_o why_o shall_v one_o christian_a church_n condemn_v another_o which_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o same_o foundation_n with_o herself_o and_o how_o can_v it_o be_v imagine_v that_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n can_v be_v save_v now_o as_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v we_o wise_a than_o they_o be_v our_o doctor_n more_o learned_a or_o more_o faithful_a be_v there_o another_o covenant_n make_v with_o the_o church_n since_o their_o day_n or_o be_v god_n less_o merciful_a to_o we_o than_o he_o be_v to_o they_o or_o have_v he_o make_v the_o way_n to_o heaven_n narrow_a in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n than_o at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n do_v man_n live_v better_a life_n now_o than_o at_o the_o first_o so_o that_o a_o holy_a life_n be_v so_o enlarge_v that_o the_o foundation_n of_o faith_n lay_v at_o first_o be_v not_o broad_a enough_o to_o support_v the_o new_a building_n we_o find_v it_o much_o otherwise_o and_o man_n need_v not_o enlarge_v the_o article_n and_o condition_n of_o faith_n in_o these_o degenerate_a age_n wherein_o when_o christ_n come_v he_o shall_v hardly_o upon_o earth_n find_v any_o faith_n at_o all_o and_o if_o there_o be_v need_n yet_o no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o do_v it_o because_o christ_n only_o be_v our_o lord_n and_o master_n and_o no_o man_n be_v master_n of_o our_o faith_n but_o to_o come_v close_o to_o the_o thing_n it_o be_v certain_a there_o be_v nothing_o simple_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n now_o that_o be_v not_o so_o always_o and_o this_o must_v be_v confess_v by_o all_o that_o admit_v of_o the_o so_o much_o commend_v rule_n of_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n that_o which_o be_v always_o and_o every_o where_o believe_v by_o all_o that_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o therefore_o there_o can_v be_v no_o new_a measure_n no_o new_a article_n no_o new_a determination_n no_o declaration_n oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v any_o proposition_n that_o be_v not_o always_o believe_v and_o therefore_o as_o that_o which_o be_v first_o be_v true_a that_o which_o be_v at_o first_o and_o nothing_o else_o be_v necessary_a nay_o suppose_v many_o truth_n to_o be_v find_v out_o by_o industry_n and_o by_o divine_a assistance_n yet_o no_o more_o can_v be_v necessary_a because_o nothing_o of_o this_o can_v ever_o be_v want_v to_o the_o church_n therefore_o the_o new_a discover_v truth_n can_v of_o itself_o be_v necessary_a neither_o can_v the_o discovery_n make_v it_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v unless_o i_o find_v it_o to_o be_v discover_v and_o reveal_v by_o he_o who_o very_a discovery_n though_o accidental_a yet_o can_v make_v it_o necessary_a that_o be_v unless_o i_o be_v convince_v that_o god_n have_v speak_v it_o indeed_o if_o that_o happen_v there_o be_v no_o further_a inquiry_n but_o because_o there_o be_v no_o new_a revelation_n since_o the_o apostle_n die_v whatever_o come_v in_o after_o they_o be_v only_o by_o man_n ratiocination_n and_o therefore_o can_v never_o go_v beyond_o a_o probability_n in_o itself_o and_o never_o ought_v to_o pretend_v high_a lest_o god_n incommunicable_a right_n be_v invade_v which_o be_v to_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o humane_a understanding_n the_o consequent_a of_o all_o this_o be_v there_o can_v be_v nothing_o of_o necessity_n to_o be_v believe_v which_o the_o church_n of_o god_n teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o believe_v necessary_a section_n v._n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n pretend_v to_o a_o power_n of_o introduce_v into_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o church_n new_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o endeavour_n to_o alter_v and_o suppress_v the_o old_a catholic_n doctrine_n now_o then_o have_v establish_v the_o christian_a rule_n and_o measure_n i_o shall_v in_o the_o next_o place_n show_v how_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v usurp_v a_o empire_n over_o conscience_n offer_v to_o enlarge_v the_o faith_n to_o add_v new_a proposition_n to_o the_o belief_n of_o christian_n and_o impose_v they_o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n and_o this_o i_o prove_v 1._o because_o they_o pretend_v to_o a_o power_n to_o do_v it_o 2._o they_o have_v reason_n and_o necessity_n to_o do_v so_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o interest_n and_o they_o actual_o do_v so_o both_o in_o faith_n and_o manner_n 3._o they_o use_v indirect_a and_o unworthy_a art_n that_o they_o may_v do_v it_o without_o reproach_n and_o discovery_n 4._o have_v do_v this_o they_o by_o enlarge_a faith_n destroy_v charity_n 1._o they_o pretend_v to_o a_o power_n to_o do_v it_o the_o authority_n which_o be_v bring_v in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o dissuasive_a 1664._o chapt._n 1_o sect._n pag._n 10._o edit_n dublin_n 1664._o do_v sufficient_o prove_v this_o but_o because_o they_o be_v snarl_a at_o i_o shall_v justify_v and_o enlarge_v they_o and_o confirm_v their_o sense_n by_o other_o first_o the_o pope_n have_v authority_n as_o his_o doctor_n teach_v the_o world_n to_o declare_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o this_o be_v as_o much_o as_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o can_v do_v that_o be_v as_o the_o apostle_n by_o gather_v the_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n make_v up_o a_o symbol_n of_o what_o thing_n be_v necessary_a and_o by_o their_o impose_v this_o collection_n on_o all_o church_n their_o baptise_v into_o that_o faith_n their_o make_n it_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n to_o all_o christian_n do_v declare_v not_o only_o the_o truth_n but_o the_o necessity_n of_o those_o article_n to_o be_v learn_v and_o to_o be_v believe_v so_o the_o pope_n also_o pretend_v he_o can_v declare_v for_o declare_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v true_a and_o declare_v it_o to_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n be_v thing_n of_o vast_a difference_n he_o that_o declare_v it_o only_o to_o be_v true_a impose_v no_o necessity_n of_o believe_v it_o but_o if_o he_o can_v make_v it_o appear_v to_o be_v true_a he_o to_o who_o it_o so_o appear_v can_v but_o believe_v it_o but_o if_o he_o declare_v it_o to_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n he_o say_v that_o god_n have_v make_v it_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v and_o to_o be_v believe_v and_o if_o any_o have_v power_n to_o declare_v this_o to_o declare_v i_o say_v not_o as_o a_o doctor_n but_o as_o a_o apostle_n as_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o he_o be_v master_n and_o lord_n of_o the_o conscience_n now_o that_o the_o pope_n pretend_v to_o this_o we_o be_v fierce_o teach_v by_o his_o doctor_n and_o by_o his_o law_n thus_o the_o gloss_n upon_o the_o extravagant_a de_fw-fr verborum_fw-la significatione_n ibid._n gloss_n ibid._n cap._n cum_fw-la inter_fw-la verb._n declaramus_fw-la say_v he_o be_v prince_n of_o the_o church_n and_o christ_n vicar_n can_v in_o that_o capacity_n make_v a_o declaration_n upon_o a_o article_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n he_o can_v declare_v it_o authoritatiuè_fw-la not_o
and_o make_v religion_n and_o the_o service_n of_o god_n to_o consist_v in_o thing_n indifferent_a so_o they_o make_v void_a god_n commandment_n by_o turn_v religion_n into_o superstition_n 2._o whereas_o humane_a law_n custom_n and_o tradition_n may_v oblige_v in_o public_a and_o for_o order_n sake_n and_o decency_n and_o for_o reputation_n and_o avoid_v scandal_n and_o to_o give_v testimony_n of_o obedience_n and_o be_v not_o violate_v if_o they_o be_v omit_v without_o scandal_n and_o contempt_n and_o injury_n with_o a_o probable_a reason_n yet_o to_o think_v they_o oblige_v beyond_o what_o man_n can_v see_v or_o judge_n or_o punish_v or_o feel_v be_v to_o give_v to_o humane_a law_n the_o estimate_n which_o be_v due_a to_o divine_a law_n so_o do_v the_o pharisee_n quicquid_fw-la sapientes_fw-la vetant_fw-la palàm_fw-la fieri_fw-la id_fw-la etiam_fw-la in_o penetralibus_fw-la vetitum_fw-la est_fw-la say_v rabbi_n bachai_n but_o this_o be_v the_o prerogative_n of_o divine_a law_n which_o oblige_v as_o much_o in_o private_a as_o in_o public_a because_o god_n equal_o see_v in_o the_o closet_n and_o in_o the_o temple_n man_n can_v do_v this_o and_o therefore_o can_v make_v law_n to_o bind_v where_o they_o can_v have_v no_o cognisance_n and_o no_o concern_v 3._o humane_a authority_n be_v to_o command_v according_a to_o its_o own_o rate_n that_o be_v at_o the_o rate_n of_o humane_a understanding_n where_o the_o obedience_n may_v be_v possible_o deficient_a because_o the_o understanding_n be_v fallible_a but_o the_o divine_a authority_n be_v infallible_a and_o absolute_a and_o supreme_a and_o therefore_o our_o obedience_n to_o it_o must_v be_v as_o absolute_a perpetual_a and_o indeficient_a but_o the_o pharisee_n have_v a_o say_n and_o their_o practice_n be_v according_o si_fw-mi dixerint_fw-la scribae_fw-la dextram_fw-la esse_fw-la sinistram_fw-la &_o sinistram_fw-la esse_fw-la dextram_fw-la audi_fw-la eos_fw-la say_v the_o forename_a rabbi_n 2._o the_o second_o degree_n in_o which_o this_o express_a itself_o among_o the_o pharisee_n be_v that_o they_o do_v not_o only_o equal_a but_o prefer_v the_o commandment_n of_o man_n before_o the_o command_v of_o god_n plus_fw-fr est_fw-fr in_o verbis_fw-la scribarum_fw-la quam_fw-la in_o verbis_fw-la legis_fw-la etc._n legis_fw-la in_o ●itulis_fw-la thalmudicis_fw-la baba_n metzias_n b._n recho●h_o etc._n etc._n and_o of_o this_o the_o instance_n that_o our_o bless_a saviour_n give_v be_v in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o corban_n and_o not_o relieve_v their_o parent_n sacrum_n erit_fw-la quicquid_fw-la paravero_fw-la in_o futurum_fw-la ad_fw-la os_fw-la patris_fw-la nissim_n patris_fw-la rabbi_n nissim_n if_o they_o say_v it_o be_v dedicate_v their_o father_n be_v hungry_a belly_n may_v not_o be_v relieve_v by_o it_o and_o this_o our_o bless_a saviour_n call_v as_o be_v the_o high_a degree_n of_o this_o superstition_n a_o make_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n of_o no_o effect_n by_o their_o tradition_n this_o do_v it_o direct_o as_o the_o other_o do_v it_o by_o necessary_a and_o unavoidable_a consequence_n now_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v great_o guilty_a of_o this_o criminal_a way_n of_o teach_v and_o mis-leading_a the_o conscience_n of_o her_o disciple_n will_v appear_v in_o these_o among_o many_o other_o instance_n section_n x._o of_o the_o seal_n of_o confession_n 1._o i_o first_o instance_n in_o their_o seal_n of_o confession_n and_o the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o a_o priest_n be_v to_o take_v care_n of_o he_o penitent'_v fame_n or_o whether_o he_o be_v not_o in_o all_o prudent_a and_o pious_a way_n to_o be_v careful_a lest_o he_o make_v that_o intercourse_n odious_a for_o certain_o he_o be_v but_o whether_o the_o seal_n of_o confession_n be_v so_o sacred_a and_o impregnable_a that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v open_v in_o the_o imminent_a danger_n of_o a_o king_n or_o kingdom_n or_o for_o the_o do_v the_o great_a good_a or_o avoid_v the_o great_a evil_n in_o the_o world_n that_o be_v now_o the_o question_n and_o such_o a_o broad_a seal_n as_o this_o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v never_o speak_v of_o by_o the_o prophet_n or_o apostle_n in_o the_o old_a or_o the_o new_a testament_n never_o be_v so_o much_o as_o mention_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o doctor_n not_o so_o much_o as_o name_v in_o the_o ancient_a council_n of_o the_o church_n and_o be_v not_o hear_v of_o until_o after_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n gregory_n the_o seven_o now_o how_o this_o be_v determine_v &_o practise_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o may_v quick_o see_v the_o first_o direct_a rule_n in_o the_o western_a church_n we_o find_v in_o this_o affair_n remissionibus_fw-la decretal_a de_fw-fr poenitent●is_fw-fr &_o remissionibus_fw-la be_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o lateran_n council_n cap._n omnis_fw-la utriusque_fw-la in_o which_o to_o confess_v at_o easter_n be_v make_v a_o ecclesiastical_a law_n and_o as_o a_o appendix_n to_o it_o this_o caution_n caveatautem_fw-la omninò_fw-la ne_fw-la verbo_fw-la aut_fw-la signo_fw-la aut_fw-la alio_fw-la quovis_fw-la modo_fw-la aliquatenus_fw-la prodat_fw-la peccatorem_fw-la sed_fw-la si_fw-la prudentiore_fw-la consilio_fw-la indiguerit_fw-la illud_fw-la absque_fw-la ullâ_fw-la expressione_n personae_fw-la requirat_fw-la this_o law_n concern_v they_o that_o do_v confess_v their_o secret_a sin_n to_o a_o priest_n in_o order_n to_o counsel_n comfort_n and_o pardon_v from_o god_n by_o his_o ministry_n be_v very_o prudent_a and_o pious_a and_o it_o relate_v only_o to_o the_o person_n not_o to_o the_o crime_n these_o may_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o any_o doubt_n or_o the_o advantage_n of_o better_a counsel_n and_o instruction_n be_v reveal_v the_o person_n upon_o such_o account_n may_v not_o nisi_fw-la veritas_fw-la aut_fw-la obedientia_fw-la aliud_fw-la exigat_fw-la 21._o in_o 3._o do_v 21._o as_o s._n bonaventure_n say_v well_o unless_o truth_n or_o obedience_n require_v the_o contrary_a for_o indeed_o the_o person_n be_v not_o often_o so_o material_a as_o to_o the_o inquiry_n of_o future_a counsel_n or_o present_a judgement_n as_o the_o greatness_n and_o other_o circumstance_n of_o the_o sin_n but_o this_o be_v a_o ancient_a ecclesiastical_a rule_n eccles._n ●ib_fw-la 7._o cap._n 16._o hist._n eccles._n as_o we_o find_v it_o relate_v by_o sozomen_n presbyterum_fw-la aliquem_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la integritate_fw-la quam_fw-la maximè_fw-la spectabilem_fw-la secretorum_fw-la eitam_fw-la tenacem_fw-la ac_fw-la sapientem_fw-la huic_fw-la officio_fw-la praefecerunt_fw-la a_o penitentiary_n priest_n be_v appoint_v for_o the_o penitent_n a_o man_n that_o be_v of_o good_a life_n wise_a and_o secret_a so_o far_o be_v well_o and_o agreeable_a to_o common_a prudence_n and_o natural_a reason_n and_o the_o word_n of_o solomon_n 13._o prov._n 11._o 13._o qui_fw-la ambulat_fw-la fraudulenter_n revelat_fw-la arcanum_fw-la qui_fw-la autem_fw-la fidelis_fw-la est_fw-la celat_fw-la amici_fw-la commissum_fw-la there_o be_v in_o this_o case_n some_o more_o reason_n than_o in_o ordinary_a secret_n but_o still_o the_o obligation_n be_v the_o same_o and_o to_o be_v govern_v by_o prudence_n and_o be_v subject_a to_o contradiction_n by_o great_a cause_n the_o same_o also_o be_v the_o law_n in_o the_o greek_a church_n amphilochium_n epist._n ad_fw-la amphilochium_n mention_v by_o s._n basil_n our_o father_n permit_v not_o that_o woman_n that_o have_v commit_v adultery_n and_o be_v penitent_a shall_v be_v delate_a in_o public_a 1603._o public_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a._n d._n 1603._o this_o be_v the_o whole_a ground_n and_o foundation_n on_o which_o the_o seal_n of_o confession_n do_v or_o can_v rely_v save_v only_o that_o in_o several_a church_n there_o be_v several_a law_n in_o after-age_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n and_o particular_o in_o the_o 11_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n add_v also_o the_o penalty_n of_o irregularity_n to_o every_o priest_n that_o shall_v reveal_v any_o thing_n commit_v to_o he_o in_o private_a confession_n but_o with_o this_o proviso_n that_o it_o be_v not_o bind_v in_o such_o case_n where_o the_o concealment_n be_v make_v capital_a by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n which_o because_o it_o be_v very_o strict_a and_o yet_o very_o prudent_a i_o shall_v make_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n walk_v wise_o in_o it_o and_o according_a to_o the_o precedent_n of_o the_o ancient_n catholic_n church_n in_o command_v the_o seal_n to_o be_v break_v up_o in_o some_o case_n and_o yet_o she_o have_v restrain_v it_o more_o than_o former_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n burchard_n express_o affirm_v 21._o lib._n 19_o decreti_fw-la svi_fw-la c._n 37._o council_n mogua●_n cap._n 10._o &_o 21._o that_o before_o the_o nicene_n council_n the_o penitentiary_n priest_n may_v publish_v what_o he_o hear_v in_o confession_n if_o it_o be_v for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o penitent_a or_o for_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o crime_n it_o seem_v fit_a to_o the_o confessor_n and_o that_o he_o say_v true_a we_o have_v sufficient_a testimony_n from_o
remain_a miracle_n and_o entail_v of_o infallibility_n in_o the_o church_n to_o go_v on_o in_o the_o delivery_n of_o this_o for_o by_o that_o time_n that_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v dead_a and_o the_o infallible_a spirit_n be_v depart_v the_o scripture_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v believe_v in_o all_o the_o world_n and_o then_o it_o be_v not_o ordinary_o possible_a ever_o any_o more_o to_o detract_v faith_n from_o that_o book_n and_o then_o for_o the_o transmit_v this_o book_n to_o after_o age_n the_o divine_a providence_n need_v no_o other_o course_n but_o the_o ordinaary_a way_n of_o man_n that_o be_v right_a reason_n common_a faithfulness_n the_o interest_n of_o soul_n believe_v a_o good_a thing_n which_o there_o be_v and_o can_v be_v no_o cause_n to_o disbelieve_v and_o a_o universal_a consent_n of_o all_o man_n that_o be_v any_o way_n concern_v for_o it_o or_o against_o it_o and_o this_o not_o only_o preach_v upon_o the_o house_n top_n but_o set_v down_o also_o in_o very_a many_o writing_n this_o actual_o be_v the_o way_n of_o transmit_v this_o book_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o it_o to_o after_o age_n respective_o these_o thing_n be_v of_o themselves_o evident_a yet_o because_o i._o s._n still_o demand_v we_o shall_v set_v down_o some_o first_o and_o self_n evident_a principle_n on_o which_o to_o find_v the_o whole_a procedure_n i_o shall_v once_o more_o satisfy_v he_o and_o this_o be_v a_o first_o and_o self_n evident_a principle_n whatsoever_o can_v be_v speak_v can_v be_v write_v and_o if_o it_o he_o plain_o speak_v it_o may_v be_v as_o plain_v write_v i_o hope_v i_o need_v not_o go_v about_o to_o demonstrate_v this_o for_o it_o be_v of_o itself_o evident_a that_o god_n can_v write_v all_o that_o he_o be_v please_v to_o speak_v and_o all_o good_a scribe_n can_v set_v down_o in_o write_v whatsoever_o another_o tell_v they_o and_o in_o his_o very_a word_n too_o if_o he_o please_v he_o can_v as_o well_o transcribe_v a_o word_n speak_v as_o a_o word_n write_v and_o upon_o this_o principle_n it_o be_v that_o the_o protestant_n believe_v that_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n can_v be_v as_o easy_o understand_v after_o they_o be_v write_v in_o a_o book_n as_o when_o they_o be_v speak_v in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o first_o christian_n and_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n do_v write_v the_o life_n of_o christ_n his_o doctrine_n the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n as_o plain_a as_o they_o do_v speak_v they_o at_o least_o as_o plain_a as_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o end_n for_o which_o they_o be_v write_v which_o be_v the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o what_o necessity_n now_o can_v there_o be_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o perpetual_a miracle_n still_o current_a in_o the_o church_n and_o a_o spirit_n of_o infallibility_n descendant_n to_o remember_v the_o church_n of_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v at_o once_o set_v down_o in_o a_o book_n the_o truth_n and_o authority_n of_o which_o be_v at_o first_o prove_v by_o infallible_a testimony_n the_o memory_n and_o certainty_n of_o which_o be_v preserve_v among_o christian_n by_o many_o unquestionable_a record_n and_o testimony_n of_o several_a nature_n 2._o as_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n that_o a_o infallible_a oral_a tradition_n shall_v do_v any_o more_o but_o consign_v the_o book_n of_o scripture_n so_o it_o can_v not_o do_v any_o more_o without_o a_o continual_a miracle_n that_o there_o be_v not_o continue_v miracle_n be_v sufficient_o prove_v by_o prove_v it_o be_v not_o necessary_a it_o shall_v for_o that_o also_o be_v another_o first_o and_o self-evident_a principle_n that_o the_o all_o wise_a god_n do_v not_o do_v any_o thing_n much_o less_o such_o thing_n as_o miracle_n to_o no_o purpose_n and_o for_o no_o need_n but_o now_o if_o there_o be_v not_o a_o continue_a miracle_n then_o oral_a tradition_n be_v not_o fit_a to_o be_v trust_v in_o relate_v the_o particular_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n for_o if_o in_o a_o succession_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n from_o s._n peter_n down_o to_o p._n alexander_n the_o seven_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o any_o man_n to_o be_v assure_v that_o there_o be_v no_o nullity_n in_o the_o ordination_n but_o insensible_o there_o may_v intervene_v something_o to_o make_v a_o breach_n in_o the_o long_a line_n which_o must_v in_o that_o case_n be_v make_v up_o as_o well_o as_o they_o can_v by_o tie_v a_o knot_n on_o it_o it_o will_v be_v infinite_o more_o hard_a to_o suppose_v but_o that_o in_o the_o series_n and_o successive_a talk_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n there_o must_v needs_o be_v infinite_a variety_n and_o many_o thing_n tell_v otherwise_o and_o something_n speak_v with_o evil_a purpose_n by_o such_o as_o preach_v christ_n out_o of_o envy_n and_o many_o odd_a thing_n say_v and_o doctrine_n strange_o represent_v by_o such_o as_o creep_v into_o house_n and_o lead_v captive_a silly_a woman_n it_o may_v be_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o apostolical_a church_n do_v preach_v right_a doctrine_n for_o divers_a age_n but_o yet_o in_o jerusalem_n where_o fifteen_o bishop_n in_o succession_n be_v circumcise_a who_o can_v tell_v how_o many_o thing_n may_v be_v speak_v in_o justification_n of_o that_o practice_n which_o may_v secret_o undervalue_v the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n and_o where_o be_v the_o oral_a tradition_n then_o of_o this_o proposition_n if_o you_o be_v circumcise_a christ_n shall_v profit_v you_o nothing_o but_o however_o though_o the_o bishop_n do_v preach_v all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n yet_o these_o sermon_n be_v tell_v to_o they_o that_o be_v absent_a by_o other_o who_o it_o may_v be_v may_v mistake_v something_o and_o understand_v they_o to_o other_o sense_n than_o be_v intend_v and_o though_o infallibility_n of_o testify_v may_v be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o the_o chief_a ruler_n of_o it_o for_o i_o hope_v i._n s._n do_v not_o suppose_v it_o subject_v in_o every_o single_a christian_a man_n or_o woman_n yet_o when_o this_o testimony_n of_o they_o be_v carry_v abroad_o the_o reporter_n be_v not_o always_o infallible_a and_o let_v it_o be_v consider_v that_o even_o now_o since_o christianity_n have_v be_v transmit_v so_o many_o age_n and_o there_o be_v so_o many_o thousand_o that_o teach_v it_o yet_o how_o many_o hundred_o of_o these_o thousand_o understand_v but_o very_o little_a of_o it_o and_o therefore_o tell_v it_o to_o other_o but_o pitiful_o and_o imperfect_o so_o that_o if_o god_n in_o his_o goodness_n have_v not_o preserve_v to_o we_o the_o sure_a word_n of_o the_o prophetical_a and_o evangelical_n scripture_n christianity_n will_v by_o this_o time_n have_v be_v a_o most_o strange_a thing_n litera_fw-la scripta_fw-la manet_fw-la as_o to_o the_o apostle_n while_o they_o live_v it_o be_v so_o easy_a to_o have_v recourse_n that_o error_n dare_v not_o appear_v with_o a_o open_a face_n but_o the_o cure_n be_v at_o hand_n so_o have_v the_o apostle_n when_o they_o take_v care_n to_o leave_v something_o leave_v to_o the_o church_n to_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o the_o precious_a doctrine_n they_o put_v a_o sure_a standard_n and_o fix_v a_o rule_n in_o the_o church_n to_o which_o all_o doubt_n may_v be_v bring_v to_o trial_n and_o against_o which_o all_o heresy_n may_v be_v dash_v in_o piece_n but_o we_o have_v live_v to_o see_v the_o apostolical_a church_n rend_v from_o one_o another_o and_o teach_v contrary_a thing_n and_o pretend_v contrary_a tradition_n and_o abound_v in_o several_a sense_n and_o excommunicate_v one_o another_o and_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o example_n that_o we_o shall_v see_v the_o greek_n go_v any_o whither_o but_o to_o their_o own_o superior_a and_o their_o own_o church_n to_o be_v teach_v christian_a religion_n and_o the_o latin_n do_v always_o go_v to_o their_o own_o patriarch_n and_o to_o their_o own_o bishop_n and_o church_n and_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a it_o shall_v be_v otherwise_o now_o than_o it_o have_v be_v hitherto_o that_o be_v that_o they_o follow_v the_o religion_n that_o be_v teach_v they_o there_o and_o the_o tradition_n that_o be_v deliver_v by_o their_o immediate_a superior_n now_o there_o be_v so_o vast_a a_o difference_n not_o only_o in_o the_o great_a church_n but_o in_o several_a age_n and_o in_o several_a diocese_n and_o in_o single_a priest_n every_o one_o understanding_n as_o he_o can_v and_o speak_v as_o he_o please_v and_o remember_v as_o he_o may_v and_o express_v it_o according_o and_o the_o people_n also_o understand_v it_o by_o half_n and_o tell_v it_o to_o their_o child_n sometime_o ill_o sometime_o not_o at_o all_o and_o seldom_o as_o they_o shall_v and_o they_o who_o be_v teach_v neglect_v it_o too_o gross_o and_o attend_v to_o it_o very_o careless_o and_o forget_v it_o too_o quick_o and_o which_o be_v worse_o yet_o man_n expound_v it_o according_a to_o
their_o interest_n or_o their_o lust_n out_o of_o faction_n or_o as_o they_o be_v mislead_v and_o then_o report_v it_o according_o these_o and_o a_o thousand_o thing_n more_o convince_v we_o of_o the_o easiness_n of_o be_v deceive_v by_o oral_a tradition_n of_o doctrine_n which_o can_v insensible_o and_o unavoidable_o be_v change_v in_o great_a difference_n and_o mistake_n but_o can_v never_o suffer_v any_o consider_a person_n to_o believe_v that_o mouth_n delivery_n be_v a_o better_a way_n of_o keep_v record_n than_o writing_n in_o a_o book_n so_o that_o now_o i_o wonder_v that_o i._o s._n be_v please_v to_o call_v tradition_n certainty_n the_o first_o principle_n of_o controversy_n the_o pretence_n of_o it_o be_v indeed_o the_o mother_n and_o nurse_n of_o controversy_n for_o in_o the_o world_n there_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n more_o uncertain_a than_o the_o report_n of_o man_n word_n how_o many_o man_n have_v be_v undo_v by_o mistake_a word_n and_o it_o be_v well_o remember_v that_o in_o the_o last_o unhappy_a parliament_n a_o gentleman_n be_v call_v to_o the_o bar_n for_o speak_v word_n of_o truth_n and_o honesty_n 1641._o 1641._o but_o against_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o house_n the_o word_n be_v speak_v in_o a_o great_a assembly_n before_o many_o witness_n curious_a and_o malicious_a observer_n speak_v at_o that_o very_a time_n and_o yet_o when_o the_o word_n be_v question_v they_o can_v not_o agree_v what_o they_o be_v and_o consequent_o the_o sense_n of_o they_o may_v be_v strange_o alter_v since_o a_o word_n the_o misplace_n of_o a_o word_n a_o accent_n a_o point_n any_o ambiguity_n any_o mistake_n may_v change_v the_o sense_n well_o upon_o this_o accident_n the_o speaker_n call_v to_o a_o gentleman_n who_o he_o have_v observe_v to_o write_v the_o word_n and_o to_o he_o they_o appeal_v and_o he_o tell_v they_o that_o which_o i_o suppose_a be_v say_v but_o whole_o differ_v from_o they_o that_o speak_v it_o the_o traditionary_a part_n of_o the_o parliament_n all_o the_o rest_n which_o i._o s._n say_v in_o his_o first_o way_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o strange_a and_o arrogant_a brag_n which_o as_o it_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o modesty_n of_o a_o christian_a so_o it_o be_v a_o ill_a sign_n of_o a_o sober_a and_o wise_a conviction_n for_o if_o he_o have_v demonstrate_v the_o certainty_n of_o oral_a tradition_n he_o need_v no_o such_o noise_n they_o that_o speak_v true_a make_v the_o least_o stir_n and_o when_o they_o be_v at_o peace_n in_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n they_o be_v please_v it_o be_v well_o and_o so_o they_o leave_v it_o to_o prevail_v by_o its_o native_a strength_n but_o after_o all_o this_o noise_n make_v by_o i._n s._n why_o be_v he_o so_o fierce_a to_o call_v i_o to_o first_o and_o self_n evident_a principle_n do_v any_o school_n of_o philosophy_n do_v so_o in_o their_o system_n and_o discourse_n be_v there_o not_o in_o every_o science_n divers_a praecognita_fw-la thing_n to_o be_v presuppose_v and_o believe_v before_o we_o can_v prove_v any_o thing_n be_v it_o reasonable_a when_o i_o reprove_v any_o vicious_a person_n for_o dishonour_v god_n and_o dissuade_v he_o from_o his_o wicked_a course_n that_o he_o shall_v tell_v i_o he_o will_v not_o be_v dissuade_v by_o my_o fine_a word_n but_o if_o i_o will_v go_v to_o principle_n and_o first_o ground_n he_o will_v hear_v i_o and_o i_o must_v first_o prove_v what_o dishonour_v be_v and_o how_o god_n can_v be_v dishonour_v and_o whether_o it_o be_v only_o by_o fiction_n of_o law_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o by_o way_n of_o condescension_n it_o be_v so_o say_v and_o yet_o after_o all_o this_o i_o must_v prove_v that_o god_n do_v care_n at_o all_o whether_o the_o man_n say_v such_o thing_n or_o no_o or_o last_o i_o must_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n before_o he_o can_v suffer_v i_o to_o reprove_v he_o upon_o such_o ungrounded_a discourse_n theology_n and_o the_o science_n of_o the_o scripture_n suppose_v divers_a ground_n lay_v down_o before_o and_o believe_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o wild_a demand_n that_o in_o every_o book_n we_o shall_v make_v a_o logical_a system_a or_o a_o formal_a analyst_n of_o all_o our_o discourse_n and_o make_v a_o map_n describe_v all_o the_o whole_a passage_n from_o the_o first_o truth_n to_o the_o present_a affirmative_a but_o if_o i._n s._n will_v but_o consider_v what_o the_o design_n of_o the_o dissuasive_a be_v and_o that_o the_o purpose_n of_o it_o be_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o popery_n as_o such_o be_v whole_o a_o innovation_n neither_o catholic_n nor_o apostolic_a there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o come_v to_o any_o other_o first_o ground_n but_o to_o show_v the_o time_n when_o the_o roman_a proposition_n be_v not_o catholic_a doctrine_n and_o when_o they_o begin_v to_o be_v esteem_v so_o these_o thing_n be_v matter_n of_o fact_n and_o need_v no_o reduction_n to_o any_o other_o first_o principle_n but_o the_o credible_a testimony_n of_o man_n fit_a to_o be_v believe_v but_o yet_o because_o i_o will_v humour_v i._o s._n for_o this_o once_o even_o here_o also_o the_o dissuasive_a rely_v upon_o a_o first_o and_o self_n evident_a principle_n as_o any_o be_v in_o christianity_n and_o that_o be_v quod_fw-la primum_fw-la verum_fw-la and_o therefore_o if_o i_o prove_v that_o the_o roman_a doctrine_n now_o controvert_v be_v not_o at_o first_o but_o come_v in_o afterward_o than_o i_o have_v build_v the_o dissuasive_a aright_o and_o now_o i_o have_v point_v it_o out_o and_o have_v already_o in_o part_n and_o in_o the_o follow_a book_n have_v more_o large_o do_v it_o therefore_o i_o hope_v i._n s._n will_v be_v as_o good_a as_o his_o word_n and_o yield_v himself_o absolute_o confute_v but_o because_o there_o be_v some_o other_o reason_n incline_v i_o to_o think_v he_o will_v not_o perform_v his_o promise_n and_o particular_o because_o of_o the_o ill_a naturedness_n of_o his_fw-la own_o principle_n that_o i_o may_v use_v his_o own_o expression_n in_o in_o his_o postscript_n yet_o if_o i_o have_v fail_v in_o my_o proof_n it_o be_v not_o for_o want_v of_o clear_a and_o evident_a principle_n but_o of_o right_a deduction_n from_o they_o and_o therefore_o he_o be_v mistake_v in_o his_o first_o way_n of_o mine_v and_o whether_o there_o be_v any_o defect_n in_o any_o thing_n else_o will_v be_v put_v to_o trial_n in_o the_o sequel_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o lion_n be_v not_o so_o terrible_a as_o he_o be_v paint_v the_o second_o way_n in_o the_o next_o place_n i_o shall_v try_v his_o second_o mine_n and_o believe_v i_o shall_v find_v it_o big_a with_o a_o brutum_fw-la fulmen_fw-la and_o that_o it_o can_v do_v no_o hurt_n but_o make_v a_o noise_n and_o scare_v the_o boy_n in_o the_o neighbourhood_n for_o now_o though_o in_o the_o first_o way_n he_o blame_v i_o for_o rely_v upon_o no_o first_o and_o self_n evident_a principle_n in_o the_o second_o he_o exclude_v i_o from_o all_o right_n of_o use_v any_o unless_o i_o will_v take_v he_o he_o say_v i_o have_v no_o right_a to_o allege_v scripture_n or_o father_n council_n or_o reason_n history_n or_o instance_n but_o why_o i_o pray_v it_o be_v do_v thus_o all_o discourse_n suppose_v that_o certain_a upon_o which_o it_o build_v that_o be_v his_o first_o proposition_n what_o he_o make_v of_o it_o afterward_o we_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o may_v consider_v that_o though_o all_o his_o discourse_n suppose_v that_o certain_a on_o which_o they_o build_v because_o his_o goose_n be_v swan_n and_o his_o argument_n be_v demonstration_n yet_o there_o be_v many_o wise_a discourse_n which_o rely_v upon_o probable_a argument_n and_o so_o do_v a_o moral_a demonstration_n and_o such_o a_o great_a wit_n of_o france_n mr._n silhon_n suppose_v to_o be_v his_o best_a way_n of_o prove_v the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul._n now_o this_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o coacervation_n of_o many_o probability_n which_o according_a to_o the_o subject_a matter_n as_o not_o be_v capable_a of_o any_o other_o way_n of_o probation_n amount_v to_o the_o effect_n of_o a_o demonstration_n and_o however_o this_o gentleman_n look_v big_a upon_o it_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v by_o the_o wise_a of_o his_o own_o party_n acknowledge_v to_o rely_v but_o upon_o prudential_a motive_n and_o he_o be_v a_o mad_a man_n say_v artistotle_n who_o in_o some_o case_n in_o which_o yet_o a_o man_n may_v discourse_v wise_o enough_o look_v for_o any_o more_o than_o argument_n of_o a_o high_a probability_n but_o what_o do_v i._n s._n think_v of_o argument_n ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la do_v they_o suppose_v that_o certain_a which_o they_o build_v upon_o or_o if_o they_o do_v not_o can_v there_o be_v no_o good_a discourse_n make_v upon_o they_o what_o
solomon_n but_o when_o we_o consider_v those_o man_n who_o detain_v the_o faith_n in_o vnrighteousness_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n that_o god_n leave_v they_o and_o give_v they_o over_o to_o believe_v a_o lie_n and_o deliver_v they_o to_o the_o spirit_n of_o illusion_n and_o therefore_o it_o will_v be_v ill_a to_o make_v our_o faith_n to_o rely_v upon_o such_o dangerous_a foundation_n as_o all_o the_o principle_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o propriety_n of_o the_o godly_a so_o they_o only_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n of_o which_o glorious_a thing_n be_v speak_v and_o it_o will_v be_v vain_a to_o talk_v of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o god_n church_n the_o roman_a doctor_n either_o must_v confess_v it_o subject_v here_o that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n in_o this_o sense_n or_o they_o can_v find_v it_o no_o where_o in_o short_a this_o be_v the_o church_n in_o the_o sense_n now_o explicate_v which_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o therefore_o from_o hence_o they_o refuse_v to_o have_v their_o learning_n can_v never_o pretend_v wise_o that_o they_o can_v be_v infallible_o direct_v we_o have_v see_v what_o be_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n and_o sometime_o person_n former_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o next_o place_n let_v we_o see_v what_o now_o a_o day_n they_o mean_v by_o the_o church_n with_o which_o name_n or_o word_n they_o so_o much_o abuse_v the_o world_n 1._o therefore_o by_o church_n sometime_o they_o mean_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o they_o that_o profess_v christianity_n greges_fw-la pastoribus_fw-la adunatos_fw-la priest_n and_o people_n bishop_n and_z their_o flock_n all_o over_o the_o world_n upon_o who_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n be_v call_v whether_o they_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n or_o alive_a in_o the_o spirit_n whether_o good_a christian_n or_o false_a hypocrite_n but_o all_o the_o number_n of_o the_o baptise_a except_o excommunicate_n that_o be_v since_o cut_v off_o make_v this_o body_n now_o the_o word_n church_n i_o grant_v may_v and_o be_v give_v to_o they_o by_o way_n of_o supposition_n and_o legal_a presumption_n as_o a_o jury_n of_o twelve_o man_n be_v call_v good_a man_n and_o true_a that_o be_v they_o be_v not_o know_v to_o be_v otherwise_o and_o therefore_o presume_v to_o be_v such_o and_o they_o be_v the_o church_n in_o all_o humane_a account_n that_o be_v they_o be_v the_o congregation_n of_o all_o that_o profess_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n of_o who_o every_o particular_a that_o be_v not_o know_v to_o be_v wicked_a be_v presume_v to_o be_v good_a and_o therefore_o be_v still_o part_n of_o the_o external_n church_n in_o which_o be_v the_o wheat_n and_o the_o tare_n and_o they_o be_v bind_v up_o in_o common_a by_o the_o union_n of_o sacrament_n and_o external_a rite_n 32._o de_fw-fr doctr_n christ._n lib._n 3._o c._n 32._o name_n and_o profession_n but_o by_o nothing_o else_o this_o doctrine_n be_v well_o explicate_v by_o s._n austin_n that_o be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o shall_v not_o reign_v with_o he_o for_o ever_o and_o yet_o we_o must_v not_o say_v it_o be_v bipartite_a but_o it_o be_v either_o true_a or_o mix_v or_o it_o be_v either_o true_a or_o counterfeit_v or_o some_o such_o thing_n for_o not_o only_o in_o eternity_n but_o even_o now_o hypocrite_n be_v not_o to_o be_v say_v to_o be_v with_o christ_n although_o they_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v of_o his_o church_n but_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o those_o and_o these_o as_o if_o they_o be_v both_o of_o one_o body_n propter_fw-la temporalem_fw-la commixtionem_fw-la &_o communionem_fw-la sacramentorum_fw-la they_o be_v only_o combine_v by_o a_o temporal_a mixtion_n and_o unite_v by_o the_o common_a use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o this_o to_o my_o sense_n all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n seem_v to_o say_v for_o when_o they_o excommunicate_v a_o person_n than_o they_o throw_v he_o out_o of_o the_o church_n meaning_n that_o all_o his_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o which_o they_o can_v take_v cognisance_n be_v but_o by_o the_o communion_n of_o sacrament_n and_o external_a society_n maximum_fw-la imp_a ri_fw-la non_fw-la debet_fw-la fides_fw-la aut_fw-la charitas_fw-la nostra_fw-la ut_fw-la quoniam_fw-la zizania_fw-la esse_fw-la in_o ecclesiâ_fw-la cernimus_fw-la ipsi_fw-la de_fw-la ecclesiâ_fw-la recedamus_fw-la ●_o cypr._n lib._n 3._o ep_v 3._o ad_fw-la maximum_fw-la now_o out_o of_o this_o society_n no_o man_n must_v depart_v because_o although_o a_o better_a union_n with_o christ_n and_o one_o another_o be_v most_o necessary_a yet_o even_o this_o can_v ought_v not_o to_o be_v neglect_v for_o by_o the_o outward_a the_o inward_a be_v set_v forward_o and_o promote_v and_o therefore_o to_o depart_v from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o pretence_n that_o the_o wicked_a be_v mingle_v with_o the_o godly_a be_v foolish_a and_o unreasonable_a for_o by_o such_o depart_a rigaltianae_n scil._n ep_v 51._o edit_n rigaltianae_n a_o man_n be_v not_o sure_o he_o shall_v depart_v from_o all_o the_o wicked_a but_o he_o be_v sure_a he_o shall_v leave_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o good_a who_o be_v mingle_v in_o the_o common_a mass_n with_o the_o wicked_a or_o else_o all_o that_o which_o we_o call_v the_o church_n be_v wicked_a and_o what_o can_v such_o man_n propound_v to_o themselves_o of_o advantage_n when_o they_o certain_o forsake_v the_o society_n of_o the_o good_a for_o a_o imaginary_a departure_n from_o the_o wicked_a and_o after_o all_o the_o care_n they_o can_v take_v they_o leave_v a_o society_n in_o which_o be_v some_o intemperate_a or_o many_o worldly_a man_n and_o erect_v a_o congregation_n for_o aught_o they_o know_v of_o none_o but_o hypocrite_n so_o that_o which_o we_o call_v the_o church_n be_v permixta_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la as_o s._n austin_n be_v content_v it_o shall_v be_v call_v a_o mix_a assembly_n suprà_fw-la vbi_fw-la suprà_fw-la and_o for_o this_o mixture_n sake_n under_o the_o cover_n and_o knot_n of_o external_a communion_n the_o church_n that_o be_v all_o that_o company_n be_v esteem_v one_o body_n and_o the_o appellative_n be_v make_v in_o common_a and_o so_o be_v the_o address_n and_o office_n and_o ministery_n because_o of_o those_o that_o be_v not_o now_o some_o will_v be_v good_a and_o a_o great_a many_o that_o be_v evil_a be_v undiscernable_o so_o and_o in_o that_o communion_n be_v the_o way_n and_o ministery_n and_o engagement_n of_o be_v good_a and_o above_o all_o in_o that_o society_n be_v all_o those_o that_o be_v real_o good_a therefore_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n that_o we_o call_v this_o great_a mixtion_n by_o the_o name_n of_o ecclesia_fw-la or_o the_o church_n but_o then_o since_o the_o church_n have_v a_o more_o sacred_a notion_n it_o be_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n his_o dove_n his_o belove_a his_o body_n his_o member_n his_o temple_n his_o house_n in_o which_o he_o love_v to_o dwell_v and_o which_o shall_v dwell_v with_o he_o for_o ever_o and_o this_o church_n be_v know_v and_o discern_v and_o love_v by_o god_n and_o be_v unite_v unto_o christ_n therefore_o although_o when_o we_o speak_v of_o all_o the_o act_n and_o duty_n of_o the_o judgement_n and_o nomenclature_n of_o outward_a appearance_n and_o account_n of_o law_n we_o call_v the_o mix_a society_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o when_o we_o consider_v it_o in_o the_o true_a proper_a and_o primary_n meaning_n by_o the_o intention_n of_o god_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n and_o the_o intercourse_n between_o god_n and_o his_o church_n all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n the_o life_n of_o god_n and_o all_o the_o good_a thing_n of_o god_n be_v peculiar_a to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o god_n sense_n in_o the_o way_n in_o which_o he_o own_v it_o that_o be_v as_o it_o be_v holy_a unite_v unto_o christ_n like_v to_o he_o and_o partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n the_o other_o be_v but_o a_o heap_n of_o man_n keep_v good_a company_n call_v themselves_o by_o a_o good_a name_n manage_v the_o external_a part_n of_o union_n and_o ministry_n but_o because_o they_o otherwise_o belong_v not_o to_o god_n the_o promise_v not_o otherwise_o belong_v to_o they_o but_o as_o they_o may_v and_o when_o they_o *_o expurgati_fw-la in_o ecclesiâ_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la macula_fw-la aut_fw-la ruga_fw-la quia_fw-la peccatores_fw-la donec_fw-la non_fw-la poenitet_fw-la eos_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la prioris_fw-la n●n_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o ecclesiâ_fw-la cum_fw-la autem_fw-la poenitel_a jam_fw-la sani_fw-la sunt_fw-la pacian_a ep_n 3._o ad_fw-la symp_z onium_fw-la idem_fw-la a●t_fw-la s._n hieron_n comment_n in_o ephes._n c._n 5._o macula●i_fw-la ab_fw-la eâ_fw-la ecclesiâ_fw-la alieni_fw-la esse_fw-la censentur_fw-la nisi_fw-la rursum_fw-la per_fw-la
be_v 4._o act_n 15._o 4._o that_o i_o mean_v of_o jerusalem_n where_o the_o apostle_n be_v precedent_n and_o the_o presbyter_n be_v assistant_n but_o the_o church_n be_v the_o body_n of_o the_o council_n when_o they_o be_v come_v to_o jerusalem_n they_o be_v receive_v of_o the_o church_n 22._o 22._o and_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n and_o again_o then_o it_o please_v the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n with_o the_o church_n to_o send_v choose_v man_n 23._o 23._o and_o they_o do_v so_o they_o send_v a_o decretal_a with_o this_o style_n the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n and_o brethren_n send_v greeting_n to_o the_o brethren_n which_o be_v of_o the_o gentile_n now_o no_o man_n doubt_v but_o the_o spirit_n of_o infallibility_n be_v in_o the_o apostle_n and_o yet_o they_o have_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o decree_n which_o church_n be_v the_o company_n of_o the_o convert_a brethren_n and_o by_o this_o it_o become_v a_o rule_n certain_o it_o be_v the_o first_o precedent_n and_o therefore_o aught_o to_o be_v the_o measure_n of_o the_o rest_n and_o this_o the_o rather_o because_o from_o hence_o the_o succeed_a council_n have_v derive_v their_o sacramental_a sanction_n of_o visum_fw-la est_fw-la spiritui_fw-la sancto_fw-la &_o nobis_fw-la now_o as_o it_o be_v the_o first_o so_o it_o be_v the_o only_a precedent_n in_o scripture_n and_o it_o be_v manage_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o we_o can_v have_v no_o other_o warrant_n of_o a_o authentic_a council_n but_o this_o and_o to_o think_v that_o a_o few_o of_o the_o ruler_n of_o church_n shall_v be_v a_o just_a representation_n of_o the_o church_n for_o infallible_a determination_n of_o all_o question_n of_o faith_n be_v no_o way_n warrant_v in_o scripture_n and_o there_o be_v neither_o here_o nor_o any_o where_o else_o any_o word_n or_o commission_n that_o the_o church_n ever_o do_v or_o can_v delegate_v the_o spirit_n to_o any_o representative_n or_o pass_v infallibility_n by_o a_o commission_n or_o letter_n of_o attorney_n and_o therefore_o to_o call_v a_o general_n council_n the_o church_n or_o to_o think_v that_o all_o the_o privilege_n and_o grace_n give_v by_o christ_n to_o his_o church_n be_v there_o in_o a_o part_n of_o the_o church_n be_v whole_o without_o warrant_n or_o authority_n but_o this_o be_v make_v manifest_a by_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o the_o church_n never_o do_v intend_v to_o delegate_v any_o such_o power_n but_o always_o keep_v it_o in_o her_o own_o hand_n i_o mean_v the_o supreme_a judicature_n both_o in_o faith_n and_o discipline_n i_o shall_v not_o go_v far_o for_o instance_n but_o observe_v some_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n itself_o which_o be_v therefore_o the_o more_o remarkable_a because_o in_o the_o time_n of_o her_o reign_n general_n council_n be_v arrive_v to_o great_a height_n and_o the_o high_a pretension_n clement_n the_o seven_o call_v the_o council_n of_o ferrara_n 1516._o vide_fw-la edit_fw-la roman_n actorum_fw-la generalis_fw-la octavae_fw-la syn●di_fw-la per_fw-la anton._n bladrum_n 1516._o the_o eight_o general_n synod_n in_o his_o bull_n of_o the_o 22th_o of_o april_n 1527._o direct_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o fernaesia_n who_o it_o seem_v have_v translate_v it_o out_o of_o greek_a into_o latin_a yet_o this_o general_a council_n be_v not_o accept_v in_o france_n but_o be_v express_o reject_v by_o king_n charles_n the_o seven_o and_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o cardinal_n who_o come_v from_o p._n eugenius_n to_o desire_v the_o acceptation_n of_o it_o be_v deny_v this_o council_n 1431._o a._n d._n 1431._o be_v it_o seem_v begin_v at_o basil_n and_o though_o the_o king_n do_v then_o and_o his_o great_a council_n and_o parliament_n and_o the_o church_n of_o france_n then_o assemble_v at_o bruges_n accept_v it_o yet_o it_o be_v but_o in_o part_n for_o of_o 45_o session_n of_o that_o council_n france_n have_v receive_v only_o the_o first_o 32._o and_o those_o not_o entire_o as_o they_o lie_v but_o with_o certain_a qualification_n aliqua_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la ut_fw-la jacent_fw-la alia_fw-la verò_fw-la cum_fw-la certis_fw-la modificationibus_fw-la &_o formis_fw-la as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o pragmatic_n sanction_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n be_v that_o which_o happen_v to_o the_o last_o council_n of_o lateran_n which_o be_v call_v to_o be_v a_o countermine_n to_o the_o second_o council_n of_o pisa_n and_o to_o frustrate_v the_o intend_a reformation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o head_n and_o member_n this_o council_n excommunicate_v lewis_n the_o xii_o the_o of_o france_n repeal_v the_o pragmatical_a sanction_n and_o condemn_v the_o second_o council_n of_o pisa._n so_o that_o here_o be_v a_o end_n of_o the_o council_n of_o pisa_n by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o lateran_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o lateran_n council_n have_v as_o bad_a a_o fate_n for_o beside_o that_o it_o be_v account_v in_o germany_n and_o so_o call_v by_o paulus_n langius_n a_o monk_n of_o germany_n 1513._o in_o chron._n sitizensi_fw-la a._n d._n 1513._o a_o pack_n of_o cardinal_n it_o be_v whole_o reject_v in_o france_n and_o a_o appeal_n to_o the_o next_o council_n put_v in_o against_o it_o by_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n and_o as_o ill_a success_n have_v happen_v to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n which_o it_o seem_v can_v not_o oblige_v the_o roman_n catholic_n country_n without_o their_o own_o consent_n but_o therefore_o there_o be_v many_o press_a instance_n message_n petition_n and_o artifices_fw-la to_o get_v it_o to_o be_v publish_v in_o france_n first_o to_o charles_n the_o ix_o the_o by_o pius_fw-la quartus_fw-la an._n dom._n 1563._o than_o by_o cardinal_n aldobrandino_n the_o pope_n nephew_n 1572_o then_o by_o the_o french_a clergy_n 1576_o in_o a_o assembly_n of_o the_o state_n at_o blois_n peter_n espinac_n arch_a bishop_n of_o lion_n be_v speaker_n for_o the_o clergy_n after_o this_o by_o the_o french_a clergy_n at_o melun_n 1579._o the_o bishop_n of_o bazas_n make_v the_o oration_n to_o the_o king_n and_o after_o he_o the_o same_o year_n they_o press_v it_o again_o nicolas_n angelier_n the_o bishop_n of_o brien_n be_v speaker_n after_o this_o by_o renald_n of_o beaune_z archbishop_n of_o bruges_n 1582._o 1._o vide_fw-la thuan._n hist._n lib._n 105._o &_o revieu_fw-fr du_fw-fr concile_v de_fw-fr trent_n lib._n 1._o and_o the_o very_a next_o year_n by_o the_o pope_n nuncio_n to_o henry_n the_o 3d._n and_o in_o an._n dom._n 1583._o and_o 88_o and_o 93._o it_o be_v press_v again_o and_o again_o but_o all_o will_v not_o do_v by_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o even_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o authority_n of_o general_n council_n be_v but_o precarious_a and_o that_o the_o last_o resort_n be_v to_o the_o respective_a church_n who_o do_v or_o do_v not_o send_v their_o delegate_n to_o consider_v and_o consent_v here_o then_o be_v but_o little_a ground_n of_o confidence_n in_o general_a council_n who_o sure_o the_o church_n will_v absolute_o trust_v if_o they_o have_v reason_n to_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v infallible_a but_o there_o be_v many_o more_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v for_o there_o be_v many_o sort_n of_o council_n general_n provincial_a p●rrè_fw-la gratian_n do_v 3._o ca●_n p●rrè_fw-la national_a diocesan_n the_o first_o inquiry_n will_v be_v which_o of_o all_o these_o or_o whether_o all_o of_o these_o will_v be_v a_o infallible_a guide_n and_o of_o necessity_n to_o be_v obey_v i_o doubt_v not_o but_o it_o will_v be_v roundly_o answer_v that_o only_o the_o general_n council_n be_v the_o last_o and_o supreme_a judicatory_a and_o that_o alone_a which_o be_v infallible_a but_o yet_o how_o uncertain_a this_o rule_n will_v be_v 3._o vbi_fw-la supra_fw-la act_n 3._o appear_v in_o this_o that_o the_o gloss_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n *_o say_v non_fw-fr videtur_fw-la metropolitanos_fw-la posse_fw-la condere_fw-la canon_n in_o suis_fw-la conciliis_fw-la at_o least_o not_o in_o great_a matter_n imò_fw-la non_fw-la licet_fw-la yet_o the_o vii_o the_o synod_n allow_v the_o decree_n decistones_n localium_fw-la conciliorum_fw-la the_o definition_n of_o local_a council_n but_o i_o suppose_v it_o be_v in_o these_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o general_n they_o that_o will_v accept_v they_o may_v and_o if_o they_o will_v approve_v the_o decree_n of_o provincial_a council_n they_o become_v a_o law_n unto_o themselves_o and_o without_o this_o acceptation_n general_n council_n can_v give_v law_n to_o other_o 2._o it_o will_v be_v hard_a to_o tell_v which_o be_v general_a council_n enim_fw-la lib._n 1._o c._n 4._o the_o council_n &_o eccles_n sect._n vocuntur_fw-la enim_fw-la and_o which_o be_v not_o for_o the_o roman_a council_n under_o symmachus_n all_o the_o world_n know_v can_v but_o pretend_v to_o be_v local_a or_o provincial_a consist_v only_o of_o italian_n and_o yet_o they_o bear_v universal_a in_o their_o style_n and_o it_o be_v always_o say_v as_o bellarmine_n *_o confess_v symmachus_n
they_o do_v and_o be_v certain_o in_o the_o right_n pacis_fw-la vide_fw-la marsil_n patau._n in_o defence_n pacis_fw-la and_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v otherwise_o he_o can_v never_o be_v sure_a that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o wrong_n 20._o part._n 2._o c._n 20._o especial_o when_o he_o shall_v consider_v that_o the_o council_n of_o the_o apostle_n not_o only_o admit_v presbyter_n but_o the_o laity_n who_o be_v party_n in_o the_o decree_n as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o 23._o the_o cap._n 15._o v._o 22._o 23._o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o for_o this_o there_o be_v also_o a_o very_a great_a precedent_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n in_o a_o case_n perfect_o like_o it_o when_o elijah_n appeal_v to_o the_o people_n to_o judge_n between_o god_n and_o baal_n 18._o 1_o king_n 18._o which_o of_o they_o be_v the_o lord_n by_o answer_v by_o fire_n 8._o but_o how_o if_o the_o church_n be_v divide_v in_o a_o question_n which_o have_v cause_v so_o great_a disturbance_n that_o it_o be_v think_v fit_a to_o call_v a_o council_n here_o will_v be_v a_o eternal_a uncertainty_n if_o they_o call_v both_o side_n they_o will_v never_o agree_v if_o they_o call_v but_o one_o than_o they_o be_v party_n and_o judge_n too_o 16._o socrat._v lib._n 2._o cap._n 16._o in_o the_o general_n council_n of_o sardis_n by_o command_n of_o the_o two_o emperor_n constans_n and_o constantius_n 10._o sozomen_n l._n 3._o c._n 10._o all_o bishop_n catholic_n and_o arian_n be_v equal_o admit_v so_o it_o be_v also_o both_o at_o ariminum_n and_o seleucia_n and_o so_o it_o be_v at_o ferrara_n where_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_n sit_v together_o but_o if_o one_o side_n only_o exclude_v all_o the_o adversary_n and_o declare_v they_o criminal_o before_o hand_n as_o it_o happen_v at_o trent_n and_o dort_n how_o be_v that_o one_o party_n a_o representative_a of_o the_o church_n when_o so_o great_a a_o part_n of_o christendom_n be_v not_o consult_v not_o hear_v not_o suffer_v 9_o suppose_v a_o council_n be_v call_v the_o bishop_n be_v divide_v in_o their_o opinion_n how_o shall_v the_o decision_n be_v by_o the_o major_a number_n of_o voice_n sure_o but_o how_o much_o the_o major_a shall_v one_o alone_o above_o the_o equal_a number_n carry_v it_o that_o be_v strange_a that_o one_o man_n shall_v determine_v the_o faith_n of_o christendom_n must_v there_o be_v two_o three_o as_o it_o be_v propound_v in_o trent_n in_o some_o case_n but_o if_o this_o be_v who_o shall_v make_v any_o man_n sure_a that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n shall_v go_v over_o to_o those_o two_o three_o and_o leave_v the_o remain_a party_n to_o themselves_o and_o who_o can_v ascertain_v we_o that_o the_o major_a part_n be_v the_o more_o wise_a and_o more_o holy_a or_o if_o they_o be_v not_o yet_o that_o they_o shall_v speak_v more_o truth_n but_o in_o this_o also_o the_o doctor_n be_v uncertain_a and_o divide_v and_o how_o little_a truth_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o major_a part_n in_o cause_n of_o faith_n the_o roman_a doctor_n may_v learn_v from_o their_o own_o abbot_n of_o panormo_n elect._n panorm_a in_o corp_n s_o ignificasti_fw-la de_n elect._n and_o the_o chancellor_n of_o paris_n the_o first_o say_n the_o opinion_n of_o one_o godly_a man_n ought_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o pope_n if_o it_o be_v ground_v upon_o better_a authority_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o the_o latter_a say_n every_o learned_a man_n may_v and_o aught_o to_o withstand_v a_o whole_a council_n if_o he_o perceive_v it_o err_v of_o malice_n or_o ignorance_n 10._o the_o world_n be_v not_o yet_o agree_v in_o who_o power_n it_o be_v to_o call_v the_o council_n and_o if_o it_o be_v do_v by_o a_o incompetent_a authority_n the_o whole_a convention_n be_v schismatical_a and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v trust_v as_o a_o judge_n of_o conscience_n and_o question_n of_o faith_n the_o emperor_n always_o do_v it_o of_o old_a and_o the_o pope_n of_o late_a but_o let_v this_o be_v agree_v first_o and_o then_o let_v the_o other_o question_n come_v before_o they_o till_o then_o we_o can_v be_v sure_o 11._o last_o if_o general_a council_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v the_o rule_n and_o measure_n of_o faith_n christendom_n must_v needs_o be_v in_o a_o sad_a condition_n and_o state_n of_o doubt_n for_o ever_o not_o only_o because_o a_o council_n be_v not_o call_v it_o may_v be_v in_o two_o or_o three_o age_n but_o because_o no_o man_n can_v be_v sure_a that_o all_o thing_n be_v observe_v which_o man_n say_v be_v necessary_a neither_o do_v the_o several_a church_n ever_o agree_v what_o be_v necessary_a nor_o do_v they_o ever_o agree_v to_o set_v down_o the_o law_n and_o condition_n requisite_a to_o their_o be_v such_o and_o therefore_o they_o have_v well_o and_o wise_o comport_v themselves_o in_o this_o that_o never_o any_o general_n council_n do_v declare_v that_o a_o general_n council_n be_v infallible_a indeed_o bellarmine_n labour_v great_o to_o prove_v it_o out_o of_o scripture_n his_o best_a argument_n be_v the_o promise_n that_o christ_n make_v that_o when_o two_o or_o three_o be_v gather_v in_o my_o name_n i_o will_v be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o and_o i_o will_v be_v with_o you_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n now_o to_o these_o authority_n i_o be_o now_o no_o other_o way_n to_o answer_v but_o by_o observe_v that_o these_o argument_n do_v as_o much_o prove_v every_o christian-meeting_n of_o any_o sort_n of_o good_a christian_n to_o be_v as_o infallible_a as_o a_o council_n and_o that_o a_o diocesan_n council_n be_v as_o sure_a a_o guide_n as_o a_o general_n and_o it_o be_v impossible_a from_o those_o or_o any_o other_o like_o word_n of_o christ_n to_o prove_v the_o contrary_a and_o therefore_o give_v we_o no_o certainty_n here_o but_o if_o general_a council_n in_o themselves_o be_v so_o uncertain_a yet_o the_o roman_a doctor_n now_o at_o last_o be_v come_v to_o some_o certainty_n for_o if_o the_o pope_n confirm_v a_o council_n than_o it_o be_v right_a and_o true_a and_o the_o church_n be_v a_o rule_n which_o can_v never_o fail_v and_o never_o can_v deceive_v or_o leave_v man_n in_o uncertainty_n for_o a_o spirit_n of_o infallibility_n be_v then_o in_o the_o church_n representative_a when_o head_n and_o member_n be_v join_v together_o this_o be_v their_o last_o stress_n and_o if_o this_o cord_n break_v they_o have_v nothing_o to_o hold_v they_o now_o for_o this_o there_o be_v divers_a great_a consideration_n which_o will_v soon_o put_v this_o matter_n to_o issue_n for_o although_o this_o be_v the_o new_a device_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o pope_n flatterer_n especial_o the_o jesuit_n and_o that_o this_o never_o be_v so_o much_o as_o probable_o prove_v but_o bold_o affirm_v and_o weak_o ground_v yet_o this_o be_v not_o define_v as_o a_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n ecclesia_fw-la lib._n 3._o cap._n 9_o the_o council_n &_o ecclesia_fw-la for_o 1._o we_o find_v bellarmine_n reckon_v six_o case_n of_o necessity_n or_o utility_n of_o call_v general_a council_n and_o four_o of_o they_o be_v of_o that_o nature_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v either_o not_o in_o be_v or_o else_o be_v a_o party_n the_o person_n to_o be_v judge_v as_o 1._o if_o there_o be_v a_o schism_n among_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n as_o when_o there_o happen_v to_o be_v two_o or_o three_o pope_n together_o which_o happen_v in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o basil._n or_o 2._o if_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v suspect_v of_o heresy_n or_o 3._o when_o there_o be_v great_a necessity_n of_o reformation_n of_o manner_n in_o head_n and_o member_n which_o have_v be_v so_o notorious_o call_v for_o above_o 400_o year_n or_o 4._o if_o the_o election_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v question_v now_o in_o these_o case_n it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v necessary_a to_o make_v up_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n since_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o pars_fw-la rea_fw-la and_o the_o council_n be_v the_o only_a judge_n and_o of_o this_o there_o can_v be_v no_o question_n and_o therefore_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v not_o necessary_a nor_o of_o avail_n to_o make_v the_o council_n valid_a 2._o if_o the_o pope_n approbation_n of_o the_o council_n make_v it_o to_o be_v a_o infallible_a guide_n then_o since_o without_o it_o it_o be_v not_o infallible_a not_o yet_o the_o supreme_a judicatory_a it_o follow_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o the_o council_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n very_o uncertain_a in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o it_o have_v be_v deny_v in_o divers_a general_n council_n as_o by_o the_o first_o pisan_n by_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n the_o four_o and_o five_o session_n by_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n
of_o this_o note_n as_o it_o relate_v to_o this_o question_n i_o have_v already_o manifest_v and_o what_o excellent_a concord_n there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o question_n of_o supremacy_n of_o council_n or_o pope_n and_o now_o also_o by_o the_o strict_a and_o love_a concord_n between_o the_o jansenist_n and_o molinist_n and_o the_o abetter_n of_o the_o immaculate_a conception_n of_o the_o b._n virgin-mother_n with_o their_o antagonist_n 8._o sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n be_v a_o excellent_a note_n of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o be_v the_o question_n among_o all_o the_o pretender_n and_o be_v not_o any_o advantage_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n unless_o it_o be_v a_o holy_a thing_n to_o worship_n image_n to_o trample_v upon_o king_n to_o reconcile_v a_o wicked_a life_n with_o the_o hope_n of_o heaven_n at_o the_o last_o minute_n by_o the_o charm_n of_o external_a ministery_n to_o domineer_v over_o conscience_n to_o impose_v useless_a and_o intolerable_a burden_n to_o damn_v all_o the_o world_n that_o be_v not_o their_o slave_n to_o shut_v up_o the_o fountain_n of_o salvation_n from_o the_o people_n to_o be_v easy_a in_o dispense_n with_o the_o law_n of_o god_n than_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n to_o give_v leave_n to_o prince_n to_o break_v their_o oath_n as_o pope_n clement_n the_o 7_o the_o do_v to_o francis_n the_o first_o of_o france_n to_o cozen_v the_o emperor_n 7._o vid._n the_o legend_n of_o flamen_n &_o revieu_n de_fw-fr concile_v de_fw-fr trent_n l._n ●_o ●_o 7._o and_o as_o p._n julius_n the_o second_o do_v to_o ferdinand_n of_o arragon_n send_v he_o a_o absolution_n for_o his_o treachery_n against_o the_o king_n of_o france_n not_o to_o keep_v faith_n with_o heretic_n to_o find_v out_o trick_n to_o entrap_v they_o that_o trust_v to_o their_o letter_n of_o safe_a conduct_n to_o declare_v that_o pope_n can_v be_v bind_v by_o their_o promise_n for_o pope_n paul_n the_o 4_o the_o in_o a_o conclave_n a._n d._n 1555._o complain_v of_o they_o that_o say_v he_o can_v make_v but_o four_o cardinal_n 5._o hist._n council_n trident._n lib._n 5._o because_o forsooth_o he_o have_v swear_v so_o in_o the_o conclave_n say_v this_o be_v to_o bind_v the_o pope_n who_o authority_n be_v absolute_a that_o it_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v be_v bind_v much_o less_o can_v he_o bind_v himself_o that_o to_o say_v otherwise_o be_v a_o manifest_a heresy_n and_o against_o they_o that_o shall_v obstinate_o persevere_v in_o say_v so_o he_o threaten_v the_o inquisition_n these_o indeed_o be_v holy_a doctrine_n teach_v and_o practise_v respective_o by_o their_o holiness_n at_o rome_n and_o indeed_o be_v the_o note_n of_o their_o church_n if_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o head_n to_o who_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o adhere_v we_o may_v guess_v at_o the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o body_n 9_o the_o prevalency_n of_o their_o doctrine_n be_v produce_v for_o a_o good_a note_n and_o yet_o this_o be_v a_o great_a note_n of_o mahumetanism_n than_o of_o christianity_n and_o be_v once_o of_o arianism_n and_o yet_o the_o argument_n be_v not_o now_o so_o good_a at_o rome_n as_o it_o be_v before_o luther_n time_n 10._o that_o the_o chief_n of_o the_o pope_n religion_n live_v more_o holy_a life_n than_o other_o gives_z some_o light_n that_o their_o church_n be_v the_o true_a one_o but_o i_o have_v think_v that_o their_o pope_n have_v be_v the_o chief_n of_o their_o religion_n till_o now_o and_o if_o so_o than_o this_o be_v a_o good_a note_n while_o they_o do_v live_v well_o but_o that_o be_v before_o popery_n since_o that_o time_n we_o will_v guess_v at_o their_o church_n by_o the_o holiness_n of_o the_o life_n of_o those_o that_o rule_n and_o teach_v all_o and_o than_o if_o we_o have_v none_o to_o follow_v among_o we_o yet_o we_o know_v who_o we_o be_v to_o fly_v among_o they_o 11._o miracle_n be_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o christianity_n a_o note_n of_o true_a believer_n 17._o marc._n 16._o 17._o christ_n tell_v we_o so_o and_o he_o also_o teach_v we_o that_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v reveal_v in_o lie_a sign_n and_o wonder_n and_o command_v we_o by_o that_o token_n to_o take_v heed_n of_o they_o and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v take_v it_o ill_o if_o we_o shall_v call_v they_o as_o s._n austin_n do_v the_o donatist_n mirabiliarios_fw-la miracle-monger_n concern_v which_o he_o that_o please_v to_o read_v that_o excellent_a tract_n of_o s._n austin_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la cap._n 14._o will_v be_v sufficient_o satisfy_v in_o this_o particular_a and_o in_o the_o main_a ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n 193._o tom._n 13._o p._n 193._o it_o may_v suffice_v that_o bellarmine_n say_v miracle_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o salmeron_n say_v that_o they_o be_v no_o certain_a sign_n of_o the_o true_a church_n but_o may_v be_v do_v by_o the_o false_a 12._o the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n be_v also_o a_o pretty_a sure_a note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o yet_o in_o the_o dispute_n between_o israel_n and_o judah_n samaria_n and_o jerusalem_n it_o be_v of_o no_o force_n but_o be_v real_o in_o both_o and_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n christ_n shall_v reject_v some_o who_o will_v allege_v that_o they_o prophesy_v in_o his_o name_n i_o deny_v that_o not_o but_o there_o have_v be_v some_o prophet_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n johannes_n de_fw-fr rupe_n seissâ_fw-la anselmus_fw-la marsicanus_n robert_n grosthead_n bishop_n of_o lincoln_n s._n hildegardis_n abbot_n joachim_n who_o prophecy_n and_o picture_n prophetical_a be_v publish_v by_o theophrastus_n paracelsus_n and_o john_n adrasder_n and_o by_o paschalinus_n rigeselmus_fw-la at_o venice_n 1589_o but_o as_o ahab_n say_v concern_v micaiah_n these_o do_v not_o prophesy_v good_a concern_v rome_n but_o evil_a and_o that_o rome_n shall_v be_v reform_v in_o over_o gladii_fw-la cruentandi_fw-la be_v one_o of_o the_o prophecy_n and_o vniversa_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la abscondetur_fw-la that_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v hide_v viz._n in_o the_o day_n of_o anti-christ_n and_o that_o in_o the_o day_n of_o darkness_n the_o elect_a of_o god_n shall_v have_v that_o faith_n or_o wisdom_n to_o themselves_o which_o they_o have_v and_o shall_v not_o dare_v to_o preach_v it_o public_o be_v another_o prophecy_n and_o carry_v its_o meaning_n upon_o the_o forehead_n and_o many_o more_o i_o can_v tell_v but_o whether_o such_o prophecy_n as_o these_o be_v good_a sign_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a church_n i_o desire_v to_o be_v inform_v by_o the_o roman_a doctor_n before_o i_o trouble_v myself_o any_o further_a to_o consider_v the_o particular_n 13._o towards_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o this_o catalogue_n of_o wonderful_a sign_n the_o confession_n of_o adversary_n be_v bring_v in_o for_o a_o note_n and_o no_o question_n they_o intend_v it_o so_o but_o do_v ever_o any_o protestant_n remain_v so_o confess_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_n church_n let_v the_o man_n be_v name_v and_o a_o sufficient_a testimony_n bring_v that_o he_o be_v mentis_fw-la compos_fw-la and_o i_o will_v grant_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n this_o to_o be_v the_o best_a note_n they_o have_v 14._o but_o since_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n have_v all_o have_v tragical_a end_n it_o be_v no_o question_n but_o this_o signify_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o only_a church_n indeed_o if_o all_o the_o protestant_n have_v die_v unnatural_a death_n and_o all_o the_o papist_n nay_o if_o all_o the_o pope_n have_v die_v quiet_o in_o their_o bed_n we_o have_v reason_n to_o deplore_v our_o sad_a calamity_n and_o inquire_v after_o the_o cause_n but_o we_o can_v never_o have_v tell_v by_o this_o for_o by_o all_o that_o be_v before_o he_o a_o man_n can_v tell_v whether_o he_o deserve_v love_n or_o hatred_n and_o all_o the_o world_n find_v that_o as_o die_v the_o papist_n so_o die_v the_o protestant_n and_o the_o like_a event_n happen_v to_o they_o all_o except_v only_o some_o pope_n have_v be_v remark_v by_o their_o own_o history_n for_o fune_a and_o direful_a death_n 15._o and_o late_o temporal_a prosperity_n be_v bring_v for_o a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o for_o this_o there_o be_v great_a reason_n because_o the_o cross_n be_v the_o highway_n to_o heaven_n and_o christ_n promise_v to_o his_o disciple_n for_o their_o lot_n in_o this_o world_n great_a and_o last_a persecution_n and_o the_o church_n feel_v this_o blessing_n for_o 300_o year_n together_o but_o this_o have_v be_v a_o better_a argument_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o a_o turkish_a mufty_n than_o a_o roman_a cardinal_n and_o now_o if_o by_o all_o these_o
aside_o let_v we_o determine_v the_o thing_n bring_v into_o question_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o divine_o inspire_a scripture_n and_o they_o do_v so_o and_o by_o rely_v on_o scripture_n only_o we_o shall_v never_o be_v constrain_v to_o quit_v these_o glorious_a portion_n of_o evangelical_n truth_n the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o eternal_a word_n and_o the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n whatsoever_o ought_v to_o be_v know_v of_o these_o mystery_n be_v contain_v in_o both_o testament_n say_v rupertus_n tuitiensis_n before_o quote_v and_o if_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v not_o teach_v we_o in_o these_o mystery_n we_o shall_v find_v tradition_n to_o be_v but_o a_o lame_a leg_n or_o rather_o a_o reed_n of_o egypt_n 27._o apud_fw-la euseb._n eccles._n hist._n lib._n 5._o c._n 27._o for_o artemon_n who_o be_v the_o first_o founder_n of_o that_o error_n which_o afterward_o belch_v into_o arianism_n pretend_v a_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n that_o christ_n be_v a_o mere_a man_n and_o that_o tradition_n descend_v to_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n zepherinus_n jud._n dial._n contr_n tryph._n jud._n who_o first_o give_v a_o stop_n to_o it_o and_o justin_n martyr_n say_v that_o divers_a among_o the_o christian_n affirm_v christ_n to_o be_v not_o god_n of_o god_n but_o man_n of_o man_n 8._o vide_fw-la etiam_fw-la theodor._n l._n 1._o eccles._n hist._n c._n 8._o and_o the_o arian_n offer_v to_o be_v try_v by_o tradition_n and_o therefore_o pretend_v to_o it_o and_o therefore_o the_o catholic_n do_v not_o at_o least_o according_a to_o the_o new_a doctrine_n that_o if_o one_o pretend_v tradition_n the_o other_o can_v but_o for_o all_o that_o trifle_v s._n athanasius_n do_v sometime_o pretend_v to_o it_o though_o not_o always_o and_o this_o show_v that_o there_o be_v no_o clear_a indubitate_a notorious_a universal_a tradition_n in_o the_o question_n and_o if_o there_o be_v not_o such_o a_o one_o as_o good_a none_o at_o all_o for_o it_o can_v not_o be_v such_o a_o foundation_n as_o be_v fit_a to_o build_v our_o faith_n upon_o especial_o in_o such_o mysterious_a article_n but_o it_o be_v remarkable_a what_o eusebius_n recite_v out_o of_o a_o old_a author_n who_o write_v against_o the_o heresy_n of_o artemon_n which_o afterward_o samosatenus_fw-la renew_v and_o arius_n make_v public_a with_o some_o alteration_n they_o all_o say_v say_v he_o that_o our_o ancestor_n and_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o gr._n euseb._n eccles._n hist._n lib._n 5_o c._n 27._o lat._n 28._o gr._n not_o only_o to_o have_v receive_v from_o our_o lord_n those_o thing_n which_o they_o now_o affirm_v but_o that_o they_o teach_v it_o to_o other_o and_o the_o preach_n or_o tradition_n of_o it_o run_v on_o to_o the_o day_n of_o pope_n victor_n and_o be_v keep_v entire_a but_o be_v deprave_v by_o pope_n zepherin_n and_o true_o that_o which_o be_v say_v by_o they_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v in_o it_o much_o of_o probability_n if_o the_o divine_a scripture_n do_v not_o first_o of_o all_o contradict_v they_o and_o that_o there_o be_v writing_n of_o some_o brethren_n elder_a than_o the_o time_n of_o victor_n the_o brethren_n who_o writing_n he_o name_n be_v justin_n militiades_n tatian_n clemens_n irenaeus_n and_o the_o psalm_n and_o hymn_n of_o divers_a make_v in_o honour_n of_o christ._n from_o all_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o question_n at_o nice_a be_v not_o and_o can_v not_o be_v determine_v by_o tradition_n 2._o that_o tradition_n may_v be_v and_o be_v pretend_v on_o both_o side_n 3._o that_o when_o it_o be_v pretend_v by_o the_o contradict_a party_n with_o some_o probability_n it_o can_v effectual_o serve_v neither_o 4._o that_o the_o tradition_n the_o samosatenian_o and_o arian_n boast_v of_o have_v in_o it_o much_o probability_n when_o look_v upon_o in_o its_o own_o series_n and_o proper_a state_n 5._o that_o the_o divine_a scripture_n be_v at_o that_o time_n the_o best_a firmament_n of_o the_o church_n and_o defend_v she_o from_o that_o abuse_n which_o may_v have_v be_v impose_v upon_o she_o under_o the_o title_n of_o tradition_n 6._o that_o even_o when_o tradition_n be_v oppose_v to_o tradition_n and_o the_o right_n to_o the_o wrong_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o oral_a or_o verbal_a tradition_n according_a to_o the_o new_a mode_n but_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o doctor_n that_o be_v before_o they_o but_o after_o all_o this_o i_o can_v but_o observe_v and_o deplore_v the_o sad_a consequent_n of_o the_o roman_a doctor_n pretention_n that_o this_o great_a mystery_n of_o godliness_n god_n manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n rely_v whole_o upon_o unwritten_a tradition_n for_o the_o socinian_o know_v that_o tradition_n be_v on_o both_o side_n claim_v in_o this_o article_n please_v themselves_o in_o the_o concession_n of_o their_o adversary_n that_o this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n so_o they_o allege_v the_o testimony_n of_o eccius_n and_o cardinal_n hosius_n one_o of_o the_o legate_n preside_v at_o trent_n doctrinam_fw-la de_fw-fr trino_n &_o vno_fw-la deo_fw-la 209._o in_o locis_fw-la commun_n pag._n 208._o 209._o esse_fw-la dogma_fw-la traditionis_fw-la &_o ex_fw-la scripturâ_fw-la nullâ_fw-la ratione_fw-la probari_fw-la posse_fw-la the_o same_o be_v affirm_v by_o tanner_n and_o all_o that_o be_v on_o that_o side_n in_o the_o conference_n at_o ratisbon_n by_o hieronymus_n à_fw-fr s._n hyaeintho_n and_o other_o now_o they_o be_v secure_v by_o their_o very_a enemy_n that_o they_o need_v not_o fear_v scripture_n in_o this_o question_n and_o know_v of_o themselves_o that_o tradition_n can_v alone_o do_v it_o they_o be_v at_o peace_n and_o dwell_v in_o confidence_n in_o this_o their_o capital_a error_n and_o the_o false_a peace_n be_v owe_v to_o the_o roman_a doctor_n who_o in_o italy_n help_v to_o make_v atheist_n 1652._o confessionis_fw-la christianae_n ad_fw-la rogum_fw-la damnatae_fw-la &_o combustae_fw-la manium_fw-la à_fw-la r._n d._n nicolao_n cichovio_n lacessitorum_fw-la svi_fw-la vindices_fw-la impress_n a._n d._n 1652._o and_o in_o polonia_n socinian_n and_o as_o a_o consequent_a to_o all_o this_o i_o remember_v they_o scorn_v cichovius_n who_o endeavour_v to_o confute_v they_o by_o a_o hundred_o argument_n from_o scripture_n since_o his_o own_o party_n do_v too_o free_o declare_v that_o not_o one_o of_o those_o hundred_o prove_v the_o question_n 2._o the_o next_o necessary_a article_n pretend_v to_o stand_v upon_o tradition_n be_v the_o baptise_v child_n concern_v which_o i_o consider_v either_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n or_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n the_o matter_n of_o fact_n be_v indifferent_a if_o abstract_v from_o the_o doctrine_n for_o at_o the_o first_o they_o do_v or_o they_o do_v not_o according_a as_o they_o please_v for_o there_o be_v no_o pretence_n of_o tradition_n that_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n do_v baptize_v all_o the_o infant_n of_o christian_a parent_n it_o be_v more_o certain_a that_o they_o do_v not_o do_v it_o always_o than_o that_o they_o do_v it_o in_o the_o first_o age_n s._n ambrose_n s._n hierom_n and_o s._n austin_n be_v bear_v of_o christian_a parent_n and_o yet_o not_o baptize_v until_o the_o full_a age_n of_o a_o man_n and_o more_o but_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v baptize_v any_o child_n be_v not_o at_o all_o report_v by_o a_o primely_a credible_a tradition_n or_o a_o famous_a report_n but_o that_o they_o do_v so_o be_v only_o conjecture_v at_o or_o if_o it_o be_v more_o yet_o that_o more_o whatsoever_o it_o be_v rely_v upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n as_o s._n paul_n baptise_v the_o household_n of_o stephanas_n and_o the_o jailor_n but_o then_o if_o they_o do_v or_o if_o they_o do_v not_o yet_o without_o a_o appendant_a doctrine_n this_o pass_v on_o by_o the_o voluntary_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n and_o may_v be_v or_o not_o be_v as_o they_o please_v as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o case_n of_o confirm_v they_o and_o communicate_v they_o at_o the_o same_o time_n they_o baptize_v they_o concern_v which_o because_o we_o live_v to_o have_v see_v and_o read_v of_o several_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n in_o several_a age_n it_o be_v also_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n in_o baptism_n if_o we_o consider_v it_o only_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n but_o then_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o doctrine_n appendant_a to_o it_o or_o the_o cause_n why_o it_o be_v pretend_v they_o be_v baptize_v even_o that_o child_n shall_v be_v bring_v to_o christ_n shall_v receive_v his_o blessing_n shall_v be_v adopt_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v make_v member_n of_o the_o second_o adam_n and_o be_v translate_v from_o the_o death_n introduce_v by_o the_o first_o to_o the_o life_n reveal_v by_o the_o second_o and_o that_o they_o may_v receive_v the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o a_o title_n to_o the_o promise_v evangelical_n and_o be_v bear_v again_o and_o admit_v into_o a_o state_n of_o
not_o full_o observe_v other_o according_a to_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o time_n be_v obliterated_a or_o abrogate_a by_o the_o magistery_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n ●_o de_fw-fr coron_n milit_fw-la cap._n 3._o &_o ●_o tertullian_n speak_v of_o divers_a unwritten_a custom_n of_o which_o tradition_n be_v the_o author_n custom_n be_v the_o confirmer_n and_o faith_n be_v the_o observer_n such_o be_v the_o renunciation_n in_o the_o office_n of_o baptism_n trine_n immersion_n taste_v milk_n and_o honey_n abstinence_n from_o the_o bath_n for_o a_o week_n after_o the_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n before_o day_n or_o in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o meal_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o presisident_n of_o religion_n anniversary_n oblation_n on_o birth-day_n and_o for_o the_o dead_a not_o to_o fast_v not_o to_o kneel_v on_o sunday_n perpetual_a festivity_n from_o easter_n to_o whitsuntide_n not_o to_o endure_v without_o great_a trouble_n bread_n or_o drink_n to_o fall_v upon_o the_o ground_n and_o at_o every_o motion_n to_o sign_v the_o forehead_n with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross._n some_o of_o these_o be_v ritual_n and_o some_o be_v still_o observe_v and_o some_o be_v superstitious_a and_o observe_v by_o no_o body_n and_o some_o that_o be_v not_o may_v be_v if_o the_o church_n please_v these_o indeed_o be_v tradition_n or_o custom_n before_o his_o time_n but_o not_o so_o much_o as_o pretend_v to_o be_v apostolical_a but_o if_o they_o be_v be_v yet_o of_o the_o same_o consideration_n with_o the_o rest_n if_o they_o be_v custom_n of_o the_o church_n they_o be_v not_o without_o great_a reason_n and_o just_a authority_n to_o be_v lay_v aside_o but_o be_v of_o no_o other_o argument_n against_o scripture_n than_o if_o all_o the_o particular_a custom_n of_o all_o church_n be_v urge_v for_o if_o they_o have_v come_v from_o the_o apostle_n as_o these_o do_v not_o yet_o if_o the_o apostle_n say_v dicit_fw-la dominus_fw-la they_o must_v be_v obey_v for_o ever_o but_o if_o the_o word_n be_v dico_fw-la ego_fw-la non_fw-la dominus_fw-la the_o church_n have_v her_o liberty_n to_o do_v what_o in_o the_o change_a time_n be_v most_o for_o edification_n and_o therefore_o in_o these_o thing_n let_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n pretend_v what_o tradition_n apostolical_a she_o please_v of_o this_o nature_n the_o church_n may_v keep_v they_o or_o lay_v they_o aside_o according_a to_o what_o they_o judge_v be_v best_a for_o if_o those_o canon_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n of_o which_o there_o be_v no_o question_n and_o which_o be_v record_v in_o scripture_n yet_o be_v wear_v out_o and_o lay_v aside_o those_o certain_o which_o be_v pretend_v to_o be_v such_o and_o can_v be_v prove_v can_v pass_v into_o perpetual_a obligation_n whether_o the_o church_n will_v or_o no._n i_o shall_v not_o need_v upon_o this_o head_n to_o consider_v any_o more_o instance_n because_o all_o the_o point_n of_o popery_n be_v pretend_v to_o rely_v upon_o tradition_n the_o novelty_n of_o which_o because_o i_o shall_v demonstrate_v in_o their_o proper_a place_n prove_v they_o to_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v tradition_n apostolical_a that_o they_o be_v mere_a innovation_n in_o religion_n i_o shall_v now_o represent_v the_o uncertainty_n and_o fallibility_n of_o the_o pretence_n of_o tradition_n in_o ordinary_a and_o the_o certain_a deception_n of_o those_o who_o trust_v they_o &_o the_o impossibility_n of_o end_v many_o question_n by_o they_o i_o shall_v not_o bring_v the_o usual_a argument_n which_o be_v bring_v from_o scripture_n against_o tradition_n because_o although_o those_o which_o christ_n condemn_v in_o the_o pharisee_n and_o the_o apostle_n in_o heretical_a person_n be_v not_o reprove_v for_o be_v tradition_n but_o for_o be_v without_o divine_a authority_n that_o be_v they_o be_v either_o against_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n or_o without_o any_o warrant_n from_o god_n yet_o if_o there_o be_v any_o tradition_n real_a and_o true_a that_o be_v word_n of_o god_n not_o write_v they_o if_o they_o can_v be_v show_v will_v be_v very_o good_a but_o then_o i_o desire_v the_o same_o ingenuity_n on_o the_o other_o side_n and_o that_o the_o roman_a writer_n will_v not_o trouble_v the_o question_n or_o abuse_v their_o reader_n by_o bring_v scripture_n to_o prove_v their_o tradition_n not_o by_o show_v they_o be_v record_v in_o scripture_n 2._o 2._o thes._n 2._o but_o by_o bring_v scripture_n where_o the_o word_n tradition_n be_v name_v 2._o 2._o tim._n 2._o for_o beside_o that_o such_o place_n can_v be_v with_o any_o modesty_n pretend_v as_o proof_n of_o the_o particular_a tradition_n it_o be_v also_o certain_a that_o they_o can_v prove_v that_o in_o general_n there_o be_v or_o can_v be_v any_o unrecorded_a scripture_n when_o the_o whole_a canon_n shall_v be_v write_v consign_v and_o entertain_v for_o it_o may_v be_v necessary_a that_o tradition_n shall_v be_v call_v on_o to_o be_v keep_v before_o scripture_n be_v write_v and_o yet_o afterward_o not_o necessary_a and_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v deliver_v and_o be_v not_o in_o scripture_n may_v be_v lose_v because_o they_o be_v not_o write_v and_o then_o that_o may_v be_v impossible_a for_o we_o to_o do_v which_o at_o first_o may_v have_v be_v do_v but_o this_o be_v lay_v aside_o i_o proceed_v to_o consideration_n proper_a to_o the_o question_n 1._o tertullian_n s._n hierom_n and_o s._n austin_n be_v pretend_v the_o great_a patron_n of_o tradition_n and_o they_o have_v give_v rule_n by_o which_o we_o shall_v know_v apostolical_a tradition_n and_o it_o be_v well_o they_o do_v so_o for_o sand_n ought_v to_o be_v put_v into_o a_o glass_n and_o water_n into_o a_o vessel_n something_o to_o limit_n the_o run_a element_n that_o when_o you_o have_v receive_v it_o you_o may_v keep_v it_o a_o nuncupative_a record_n be_v like_a figure_n in_o the_o air_n or_o diagram_n in_o sand_n the_o air_n and_o the_o wind_n will_v soon_o disorder_v the_o line_n and_o god_n know_v this_o and_o all_o thing_n else_o will_v not_o trust_v so_o much_o as_o the_o ten_o word_n of_o moses_n to_o oral_a tradition_n but_o twice_o write_v they_o in_o table_n of_o stone_n with_o his_o own_o singer_n 276._o clem._n alexan._n strom._n lib._n 1._o pag._n 276._o i_o know_v say_v s._n clement_n that_o many_o thing_n be_v lose_v by_o length_n of_o time_n for_o want_v of_o writing_n and_o therefore_o i_o of_o necessity_n make_v use_v of_o memorial_n and_o collection_n of_o chapter_n to_o supply_v the_o weakness_n of_o my_o memory_n and_o when_o s._n ignatius_n in_o his_o journey_n towards_o martyrdom_n confirm_v the_o church_n through_o which_o he_o pass_v by_o private_a exhortation_n as_o well_o as_o he_o be_v permit_v he_o exhort_v they_o all_o to_o adhere_v to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n mean_v that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v preach_v by_o they_o in_o their_o church_n and_o add_v this_o advice_n or_o caution_n 3._o eusib_n lib._n 3._o that_o he_o esteem_v it_o be_v necessary_a that_o this_o tradition_n shall_v be_v commit_v to_o writing_n graec._n eccles._n hist._n c._n 35._o graec._n that_o it_o may_v be_v preserve_v to_o posterity_n and_o report_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n be_v uncertain_a that_o for_o want_v of_o good_a record_n we_o can_v tell_v who_o be_v s._n peter_n successor_n immediate_o whether_o clemens_n hip●_n theo_n loret_fw-la l._n r._n c._n 8._o eccles._n hip●_n linus_n or_o anacletus_fw-la and_o the_o subscription_n of_o s._n paul_n epistle_n have_v no_o record_n but_o the_o uncertain_a voice_n of_o tradition_n be_v in_o some_o thing_n evident_o mistake_v and_o in_o some_o other_o very_o uncertain_a and_o upon_o the_o same_o account_n we_o can_v tell_v how_o many_o bishop_n be_v convene_v at_o nice_a eusebius_n say_v they_o be_v 250._o s._n athanasius_n say_v they_o be_v just_a 300._o eustratius_n in_o theodoret_n numer●_fw-la bellar._n de_fw-fr council_n &_o eccles._n l._n 1._o c._n 5._o sect._n de_fw-fr numer●_fw-la say_v they_o be_v above_o 270._o sozomen_n say_v they_o be_v about_o 310._o epiphanius_n and_o other_o say_v they_o be_v 318._o and_o when_o we_o consider_v how_o many_o pretence_n have_v be_v and_o be_v daily_o make_v of_o tradition_n apostolical_a which_o yet_o be_v not_o so_o a_o wise_a man_n will_v take_v heed_n lest_o his_o credulity_n and_o good_a nature_n make_v he_o to_o become_v a_o fool_n s._n clemens_n alexandrinus_n say_v that_o the_o apostle_n preach_v to_o dead_a infidel_n and_o then_o raise_v they_o to_o life_n and_o that_o the_o greek_n be_v justify_v by_o their_o philosophy_n and_o account_v these_o among_o the_o ancient_a tradition_n antioch_n epist._n ad_fw-la episc._n antioch_n pope_n marcellus_n be_v bold_a to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n or_o canon_n that_o a_o council_n can_v not_o be_v call_v but_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n
it_o be_v now_o if_o he_o can_v prove_v it_o be_v so_o at_o first_o he_o may_v be_v justify_v but_o else_o at_o no_o hand_n and_o i_o and_o all_o the_o world_n will_v be_v strange_o to_o seek_v what_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n mean_n by_o make_v conformity_n to_o the_o primitive_a church_n a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n if_o be_v now_o as_o it_o be_v be_v the_o rule_n for_o what_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v for_o if_o so_o then_o well_o may_v we_o examine_v the_o primitive_a church_n by_o the_o present_a but_o not_o the_o present_a by_o the_o primitive_a 5._o 5._o 5._o if_o the_o present_a catholic_n church_n be_v infallible_a yet_o we_o be_v not_o much_o the_o near_o unless_o this_o catholic_n church_n can_v be_v consult_v with_o and_o hear_v to_o speak_v not_o then_o neither_o unless_o we_o know_v which_o be_v indeed_o the_o catholic_n church_n there_o be_v no_o word_n in_o scripture_n that_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v the_o infallible_a way_n of_o prove_v the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n and_o there_o be_v no_o tradition_n that_o it_o be_v so_o that_o i_o ever_o yet_o hear_v of_o and_o it_o be_v impossible_a it_o shall_v be_v so_o because_o the_o present_a church_n of_o several_a age_n have_v have_v contrary_a tradition_n and_o if_o neither_o be_v why_o shall_v we_o believe_v it_o if_o there_o be_v let_v it_o be_v show_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n it_o be_v something_o strange_a that_o the_o infallibility_n of_o a_o church_n shall_v be_v bring_v to_o prove_v every_o particular_a tradition_n and_o yet_o itself_o be_v one_o of_o those_o particular_a tradition_n which_o prove_v itself_o but_o there_o be_v a_o better_a way_n vincentius_n lerinensis_n his_o way_n of_o judge_v a_o traditional_a doctrine_n to_o be_v apostolical_a and_o divine_a be_v the_o consent_n of_o all_o church_n and_o all_o age_n it_o be_v something_o less_o that_o s._n austin_n require_v 8._o lib._n 2._o the_o doct_n christiana_n c._n 8._o ecclesiarum_fw-la catholicarum_fw-la quamplurimùm_fw-la sequatur_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la inter_fw-la quas_fw-la sane_fw-la illae_fw-la sunt_fw-la quae_fw-la apostolicas_fw-la sedes_fw-la habere_fw-la &_o epistolas_fw-la accipere_fw-la meruerunt_fw-la he_o speak_v it_o of_o the_o particular_a of_o judge_v what_o book_n be_v canonical_a in_o which_o as_o tradition_n be_v the_o way_n to_o judge_v so_o the_o rule_n of_o tradition_n be_v the_o consent_n of_o most_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n particular_o those_o place_n where_o the_o apostle_n do_v sit_v and_o to_o which_o the_o apostle_n do_v write_v but_o this_o fancy_n of_o s._n augustine_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v so_o as_o not_o to_o be_v measure_v by_o the_o practice_n but_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostolical_a church_n for_o that_o any_o or_o more_o of_o these_o church_n do_v or_o do_v not_o do_v so_o be_v no_o argument_n that_o such_o a_o custom_n come_v from_o the_o apostle_n or_o if_o it_o do_v that_o it_o do_v oblige_v succeed_v age_n unless_o this_o custom_n begin_v by_o a_o doctrine_n and_o that_o the_o tradition_n come_v from_o the_o apostle_n with_o a_o declaration_n of_o its_o perpetual_a obligation_n and_o therefore_o this_o be_v only_o of_o use_n in_o matter_n of_o necessary_a doctrine_n but_o because_o there_o be_v in_o this_o question_n many_o differ_a degree_n of_o authority_n he_o say_v that_o our_o assent_n be_v to_o be_v give_v according_o those_o which_o be_v receive_v of_o all_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o those_o which_o be_v not_o receive_v by_o all_o and_o of_o these_o those_o be_v to_o be_v prefer_v which_o have_v the_o more_o and_o the_o grave_a testimony_n but_o if_o it_o shall_v happen_v which_o yet_o be_v not_o that_o some_o be_v witness_v by_o the_o more_o and_o other_o by_o the_o grave_a let_v the_o assent_n be_v equal_a this_o indeed_o be_v a_o good_a way_n to_o know_v nothing_o for_o if_o one_o apostolical_a church_n differ_v from_o another_o in_o a_o doctrinal_a tradition_n no_o man_n can_v tell_v who_o to_o follow_v for_o they_o be_v of_o equal_a authority_n and_o nothing_o can_v be_v thence_o prove_v but_o that_o oral_a tradition_n be_v a_o uncertain_a way_n of_o convey_v a_o doctrine_n but_o yet_o this_o way_n of_o s._n austin_n be_v of_o great_a and_o approve_a use_n in_o the_o know_v what_o book_n be_v canonical_a and_o in_o these_o thing_n it_o can_v be_v have_v in_o some_o more_o in_o some_o less_o in_o all_o more_o than_o can_v be_v say_v against_o it_o and_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o succeed_a time_n to_o give_v a_o check_n to_o our_o assent_n in_o their_o degree_n because_o the_o long_o the_o succession_n run_v still_o the_o more_o the_o church_n be_v establish_v in_o it_o but_o yet_o concern_v those_o book_n of_o scripture_n of_o which_o it_o be_v long_o doubt_v in_o the_o church_n whether_o they_o be_v part_n of_o the_o apostolical_a canon_n of_o scripture_n there_o ought_v to_o be_v no_o pretence_n that_o they_o be_v deliver_v for_o such_o by_o the_o apostle_n at_o least_o not_o by_o those_o church_n who_o doubt_v of_o they_o unless_o they_o will_v confess_v that_o either_o their_o church_n be_v not_o found_v by_o a_o apostle_n or_o that_o the_o apostle_n who_o found_v they_o be_v not_o faithful_a in_o his_o office_n in_o transmit_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a or_o else_o that_o those_o book_n particular_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n etc._n etc._n be_v no_o necessary_a part_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n or_o else_o last_o that_o that_o church_n be_v no_o faithful_a keeper_n of_o the_o tradition_n which_o come_v from_o the_o apostle_n all_o which_o thing_n because_o they_o will_v be_v deny_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n concern_v themselves_o the_o consequent_a will_v be_v that_o tradition_n be_v a_o uncertain_a thing_n &_o if_o it_o can_v be_v entire_a and_o full_a in_o assign_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n it_o be_v hardly_o to_o be_v trust_v for_o any_o thing_n else_o which_o consist_v of_o word_n subject_a to_o divers_a interpretation_n but_o in_o other_o thing_n it_o may_v be_v the_o case_n be_v not_o so_o for_o we_o find_v that_o in_o divers_a particular_n to_o prove_v a_o point_n to_o be_v a_o tradition_n apostolical_a use_n be_v make_v of_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o three_o first_o age_n indeed_o these_o be_v the_o like_a to_o know_v but_o yet_o they_o have_v tell_v we_o of_o some_o thing_n to_o be_v tradition_n which_o we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o believe_v to_o be_v such_o only_o thus_o far_o they_o be_v useful_a if_o they_o never_o report_v a_o doctrine_n it_o be_v the_o less_o likely_a to_o descend_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o if_o the_o order_n of_o succession_n be_v break_v any_o where_o the_o succeed_a age_n can_v never_o be_v sure_a if_o they_o speak_v against_o a_o doctrine_n as_o for_o example_n against_o the_o half-communion_n we_o be_v sure_a it_o be_v no_o tradition_n apostolical_a if_o they_o speak_v not_o at_o all_o of_o it_o we_o can_v never_o prove_v the_o tradition_n for_o it_o may_v have_v come_v in_o since_o that_o time_n and_o yet_o come_v to_o be_v think_v or_o call_v tradition_n apostolical_a from_o other_o cause_n of_o which_o i_o have_v give_v account_n and_o indeed_o there_o be_v no_o security_n sufficient_a but_o that_o which_o can_v never_o be_v have_v and_o that_o be_v the_o universal_a positive_a testimony_n of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o that_o look_v for_o in_o the_o dispute_v tradition_n pretend_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n may_v look_v as_o long_o as_o the_o jew_n do_v for_o their_o wrong_a messiah_n so_o much_o as_o this_o be_v can_v never_o be_v have_v and_o less_o than_o this_o will_v never_o do_v it_o i_o will_v give_v one_o considerable_a instance_n of_o this_o affair_n the_o patron_n of_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o immaculate_a conception_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin-mother_n 5._o salmeron_n disp_n 51._o in_o rom._n 5._o allege_v that_o they_o have_v the_o consent_n of_o almost_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o the_o agree_a sentence_n of_o all_o university_n especial_o of_o the_o chief_a that_o be_v of_o paris_n where_o no_o man_n be_v admit_v to_o be_v master_n in_o theology_n unless_o he_o bind_v himself_o by_o oath_n to_o maintain_v that_o doctrine_n they_o allege_v that_o since_o this_o question_n begin_v to_o be_v dispute_v almost_o all_o the_o master_n in_o theology_n all_o the_o preacher_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n all_o king_n and_o prince_n republic_n and_o people_n all_o pope_n and_o pastor_n and_o religion_n except_o a_o part_n of_o one_o consent_v in_o this_o doctrine_n they_o say_v that_o of_o those_o author_n which_o be_v by_o the_o other_o side_n pretend_v against_o it_o some_o be_v false_o cite_v other_o be_v wrest_a and_o bring_v in_o against_o their_o
if_o the_o catholic_n sometime_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n depend_v upon_o the_o church_n or_o a_o council_n they_o do_v not_o understand_v it_o in_o respect_n of_o authority_n or_o in_o themselves_o but_o by_o explication_n and_o in_o relation_n to_o we_o diximus_fw-la we_o bellarm._n de_fw-fr council_n author_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 12._o sect._n diximus_fw-la which_o be_v too_o crude_a a_o affirmative_a to_o be_v believe_v for_o beside_o that_o pighius_fw-la in_o his_o epistle_n to_o paul_n iii_o before_o his_o book_n of_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n affirm_v that_o the_o whole_a authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n depend_v upon_o the_o church_n and_o the_o testimony_n above_o cite_v do_v in_o term_n confute_v this_o say_n of_o he_o the_o distinction_n itself_o help_v not_o all_o for_o if_o the_o scripture_n have_v quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la no_o authority_n but_o what_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o church_n be_v please_v to_o give_v they_o then_o they_o have_v in_o themselves_o none_o at_o all_o for_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v for_o our_o learning_n not_o to_o instruct_v the_o angel_n but_o to_o conserve_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o church_n and_o they_o have_v no_o other_o use_n or_o design_n and_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v say_v the_o scripture_n have_v in_o themselves_o great_a authority_n he_o must_v mean_v that_o in_o themselves_o they_o be_v high_o credible_a quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la that_o be_v that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v they_o for_o their_o own_o truth_n and_o excellency_n and_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v say_v they_o have_v no_o authority_n quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la but_o what_o the_o church_n give_v they_o he_o say_v they_o be_v not_o credible_a in_o themselves_o and_o in_o se_z have_v no_o authority_n so_o that_o this_o distinction_n be_v a_o metaphysical_a nothing_o and_o be_v bring_v only_o to_o amuse_v man_n that_o have_v not_o leisure_n to_o consider_v and_o he_o that_o say_v one_o say_v the_o other_o or_o as_o bad_a under_o a_o thin_a and_o transparent_a cover_n the_o church_n give_v testimony_n external_a to_o the_o scripture_n but_o the_o internal_a authority_n be_v inherent_a and_o derive_v only_o from_o god_n but_o let_v the_o witness_n of_o the_o church_n be_v of_o as_o perfect_a force_n as_o can_v be_v desire_v i_o meddle_v not_o with_o it_o here_o but_o that_o which_o i_o charge_v on_o the_o roman_a doctor_n be_v that_o they_o give_v to_o their_o church_n a_o power_n of_o introduce_v and_o impose_v new_a article_n of_o belief_n and_o pretend_v that_o they_o have_v power_n so_o to_o do_v and_o their_o definition_n be_v of_o authority_n equal_a if_o not_o superior_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o this_o i_o have_v now_o prove_v by_o many_o testimony_n to_o all_o which_o i_o add_v that_o of_o the_o canon_n law_n itself_o canonicis_fw-la dist._n 19_o can._n in_o canonicis_fw-la in_o which_o gratian_n most_o false_o allege_v pretend_v word_n of_o saint_n austin_n which_o bellarmine_n gra●ianum_fw-la bellarmine_n de_fw-fr council_n authorit_fw-fr lib._n 2._o cap._n 12._o sect._n respond●o_fw-la ad_fw-la gra●ianum_fw-la call_v a_o be_v deceive_v by_o a_o false_a copy_n and_o among_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n reckon_v the_o decretal_a epistle_n of_o the_o pope_n inter_fw-la quas_fw-la sanè_fw-la illae_fw-la sunt_fw-la quas_fw-la apostolica_fw-la sedes_fw-la habere_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la eâ_fw-la alii_fw-la meruerunt_fw-la accipere_fw-la epistolas_fw-la now_o who_o can_v tell_v of_o any_o copy_n of_o s._n austin_n or_o hear_v of_o any_o in_o which_o these_o word_n be_v see_v certain_o no_o man_n alive_a but_o if_o gratian_n be_v deceive_v the_o deceiver_n be_v among_o themselves_o and_o yet_o they_o love_v the_o deception_n or_o else_o they_o may_v have_v expunge_v those_o word_n when_o gregory_n the_o 13_o appoint_a a_o committee_n of_o learned_a man_n to_o purge_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o it_o yet_o remain_v and_o if_o they_o do_v not_o pass_v for_o saint_n augustine_n word_n yet_o they_o be_v good_a law_n at_o rome_n authorit_fw-la 100l_n com._n tit_n 1._o de_fw-la ecclesiâ_fw-la &_o ejus_fw-la authorit_fw-la and_o heretic_n indeed_o talk_v otherwise_o say_v eckius_fw-la objiciunt_fw-la haeretioi_fw-la major_n est_fw-la authoritas_fw-la scripturae_fw-la quam_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la but_o he_o have_v confute_v they_o with_o a_o excellent_a argument_n the_o church_n use_v blood_n and_o strangle_v have_v by_o authority_n change_v a_o thing_n define_v by_o the_o scripture_n behold_v say_v he_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n over_o scripture_n i_o love_v not_o to_o take_v in_o such_o pollute_a channel_n he_o that_o be_v please_v with_o it_o may_v find_v enough_o to_o entertain_v his_o wonder_n and_o his_o indignation_n if_o he_o please_v to_o read_v b._n read_v fol._n 126._o 1._o b._n &_o 104._o b._n &_o 133._o b._n capistrano_n 9_o capistrano_n pag._n 42._o n._n 15._o &_o p._n 11._o n._n 18._o &_o 124._o n._n 9_o cuper_n 2._o cuper_n defence_n trid._n l._n 1._o &_o l._n 2._o &_o explic_a orthod_n l._n 2._o andradius_fw-la 3_o andradius_fw-la pag._n 3._o l._n 22._o cap._n 3._o sect._n 3_o antonius_n ter●ium_fw-la antonius_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o justif_a 74._o 6._o &_o hierarch_n eccl._n l._n 1._o c._n 2._o 3._o 4._o &_o in_o praefatione_fw-la ad_fw-la paulum_fw-la ter●ium_fw-la pighius_fw-la 56._o pighius_fw-la contr._n luth●_n concl._n 56._o sylvester_n prierias_fw-la 1554._o prierias_fw-la this_fw-mi contr_n luther_n 8._o de_fw-fr eccl._n concl._n 1._o l._n edit_n 1554._o johannes_n maria_n verratus_n 1._o verratus_n encherid_n cap._n 1._o coster_n 16._o coster_n in_o 3._o l._n decretal_a de_fw-fr conver_n conjug_n c._n ex_fw-la publico_fw-la n._n 16._o zabarel_n and_o quintum_fw-la and_o de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la l._n 3._o c._n 10._o sect._n ad_fw-la decimum_fw-la quintum_fw-la bellarmine_n himself_o who_o yet_o with_o some_o more_o modesty_n of_o expression_n affirm_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o substance_n which_o according_a as_o it_o have_v be_v be_v and_o be_v still_o likely_a to_o be_v make_v use_n of_o be_v enough_o to_o undo_v the_o church_n the_o word_n of_o the_o pope_n teach_v out_o of_o his_o chair_n be_v non_fw-la omnino_fw-la not_o altogether_o or_o not_o at_o all_o the_o word_n of_o man_n that_o be_v a_o word_n liable_a to_o error_n but_o in_o some_o sort_n the_o word_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n agreeable_a to_o which_o be_v that_o which_o the_o lawyer_n say_v that_o the_o canon_n law_n be_v the_o divine_a law_n so_o say_v 1._o say_v super._n 2._o decret_a de_fw-fr jurejur_fw-fr c._n nimis_fw-la n._n 1._o hostiensis_n i_o hope_v i_o shall_v not_o be_v esteem_v to_o slander_v she_o when_o these_o writer_n think_v they_o so_o much_o honour_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o these_o say_n in_o pursuance_n of_o this_o power_n and_o authority_n pope_n pius_n the_o four_o make_v a_o new_a creed_n and_o put_v his_o power_n into_o act_n do_v multiply_v new_a article_n one_o upon_o another_o and_o in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n among_o many_o other_o new_a and_o fine_a doctrine_n this_o be_v one_o that_o it_o be_v heresy_n to_o say_v that_o matrimonial_a cause_n do_v not_o pertain_v to_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n and_o yet_o we_o in_o england_n owe_v this_o privilege_n to_o the_o favour_n and_o bounty_n of_o the_o king_n and_o so_o do_v the_o ancient_a church_n to_o the_o kindness_n and_o religion_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o if_o it_o be_v so_o or_o not_o so_o it_o be_v but_o matter_n of_o discipline_n and_o can_v by_o a_o simple_a denial_n of_o it_o become_v a_o heresy_n so_o that_o what_o i_o have_v allege_v be_v not_o the_o opinion_n of_o some_o private_a doctor_n but_o the_o public_a practice_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n 1600._o lib._n benedicti_fw-la de_fw-la benedict_n bon_fw-fr niae_fw-la excusus_fw-la a._n d._n 1600._o commissum_fw-la ei_fw-la papae_fw-la munus_fw-la non_fw-la modò_fw-la articulos_fw-la indeterminatos_fw-la determinandi_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la fidei_fw-la symbolum_n condendi_fw-la atque_fw-la hoc_fw-la ipsum_fw-la orthodoxos_fw-la omnes_fw-la omnium_fw-la saeculorum_fw-la agnovisse_fw-la &_o palam_fw-la confessos_fw-la esse_fw-la it_o be_v say_v to_o paulus_n quintus_n in_o a_o address_n to_o he_o and_o how_o good_a a_o catholic_n baronius_n be_v in_o this_o particular_a 22._o an._n dom._n 373._o n._n 22._o we_o may_v guess_v by_o what_o himself_o say_v concern_v the_o business_n of_o the_o apollinarist_n in_o which_o the_o pope_n do_v and_o undo_v ut_fw-la planè_fw-la appareat_fw-la say_v baronius_n ex_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la pependisse_fw-la romani_fw-la pontificis_fw-la decreta_fw-la sancire_fw-la &_o sancita_fw-la mutare_fw-la 2._o that_o which_o i_o be_o next_o to_o represent_v be_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v reason_n and_o necessity_n to_o pretend_v to_o this_o power_n of_o make_v new_a article_n for_o they_o have_v in_o the_o body_n of_o their_o article_n and_o in_o the_o public_a doctrine_n allow_v by_o they_o and_o in_o the_o profession_n and_o practice_n of_o their_o church_n so_o many_o new_a thing_n
which_o he_o tell_v of_o the_o fellow_n beast_n 8._o bellar._n lib._n 3._o de_fw-fr euchar._n c._n 8._o who_o leave_v his_o barley_n at_o the_o command_n of_o s._n anthony_n of_o milan_n and_o go_v to_o worship_v the_o sacrament_n such_o thing_n as_o these_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n that_o they_o be_v either_o act_v or_o believe_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n since_o so_o many_o pope_n and_o priest_n be_v magician_n and_o since_o that_o villain_n of_o a_o man_n pope_n hildebrand_n as_o cardinal_n beno_n relate_v in_o his_o life_n can_v by_o shake_v of_o his_o sleeve_n make_v spark_n of_o fire_n fly_v from_o it_o i_o end_v this_o and_o make_v no_o other_o use_n of_o it_o then_o what_o be_v make_v by_o aventinus_n 7._o lib._n 5._o &_o l._n 7._o say_v that_o this_o pope_n under_o show_n of_o religion_n be_v say_v to_o have_v lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o antichrist_n multi_fw-la falsi_fw-la prophetae_fw-la nebulas_fw-la offundunt_fw-la fabulis_fw-la miraculis_fw-la exempla_fw-la vocant_fw-la à_fw-la veritate_fw-la christi_fw-la plebem_fw-la avertunt_fw-la falsi_fw-la tum_fw-la prophetae_fw-la falsi_fw-la apostoli_fw-la falsi_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la emersêre_fw-la qui_fw-la simulatâ_fw-la religione_fw-la populum_fw-la deceperunt_fw-la magna_fw-la signa_fw-la atque_fw-la prodigia_fw-la ediderunt_fw-la &_o in_o templo_fw-la dei_fw-la sedere_fw-la atque_fw-la extolli_fw-la super_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la colitur_fw-la coeperunt_fw-la dumque_fw-la svam_fw-la potentiam_fw-la dominationémque_fw-la stabilire_fw-la conantur_fw-la charitatem_fw-la &_o simplicitatem_fw-la christianam_fw-la extinxerunt_fw-la and_o they_o continue_v to_o do_v so_o to_o this_o day_n where_o they_o have_v any_o hope_n to_o prevail_v without_o discovery_n second_o themselves_o acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n of_o which_o be_v no_o inquiry_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o yet_o upon_o doubt_n arise_v be_v now_o become_v perspicuous_a by_o the_o diligence_n of_o aftertime_n it_o be_v the_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o rochester_n 9_o lib._n 3._o de_fw-fr cultu_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la c._n 9_o and_o bellarmine_n help_v to_o make_v this_o good_a with_o a_o considerable_a instance_n praeter_v sect._n praeter_v cum_fw-la scriberentur_fw-la scripturae_fw-la nondum_fw-la coeperat_fw-la usus_fw-la vovendi_fw-la sanctis_fw-la bretaigne_n country_n le_fw-fr roy_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr grand_fw-fr bretaigne_n and_o cardinal_n perron_n add_v et_fw-fr quant_fw-fr aux_fw-fr autheurs_fw-fr plus_fw-fr proche_n du_fw-fr siccle_fw-fr apostolic_a encore_fw-fr qu'il_fw-fr ne_fw-fr se_fw-fr trouve_fw-fr pas_fw-fr de_fw-fr vestiges_fw-la de_fw-fr ceste_fw-fr coustume_n etc._n etc._n neither_o in_o the_o age_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v when_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v nor_o in_o the_o age_n next_o to_o it_o be_v there_o any_o footstep_n of_o vow_v to_o saint_n for_o then_o the_o custom_n be_v not_o begin_v the_o pope_n infallibility_n go_v among_o very_o many_o for_o a_o catholic_n doctrine_n in_o spain_n and_o italy_n in_o austria_n and_o poland_n it_o be_v so_o 〈…〉_o lib._n 4._o de_fw-fr pontifice_n 〈◊〉_d cap._n 2._o sect._n secunda_fw-la 〈◊〉_d &_o sect._n exit_fw-la 〈…〉_o and_o every_o where_o else_o where_o the_o jesuit_n prevail_v but_o when_o bellarmine_n have_v affirm_v that_o nilus_n gerson_n almain_n alphonsus_n à_fw-fr castro_n and_o pope_n adrian_n the_o vi_o have_v teach_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v be_v a_o heretic_n if_o he_o define_v without_o a_o general_n council_n and_o in_o his_o censure_n of_o they_o affirm_v that_o this_o opinion_n be_v not_o propriè_fw-la haeretica_fw-la he_o plain_o by_o certain_a and_o immediate_a consequence_n confess_v that_o for_o 1400_o or_o 1500_o year_n the_o judgement_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o esteem_v infallible_a now_o if_o this_o be_v true_a it_o be_v impossible_a that_o it_o can_v ever_o be_v determine_v as_o a_o catholic_n truth_n for_o there_o be_v no_o catholic_n tradition_n for_o it_o there_o be_v not_o for_o many_o age_n and_o therefore_o either_o there_o be_v no_o tradition_n in_o the_o present_a church_n for_o it_o or_o if_o there_o be_v it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o old_a tradition_n and_o therefore_o either_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v no_o rule_n or_o if_o it_o be_v it_o be_v a_o very_a new_a one_o and_o several_a age_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v contradictory_n proposition_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o a_o council_n be_v hold_v by_o some_o roman_a catholic_n and_o it_o be_v hold_v so_o by_o all_o the_o pope_n and_o have_v without_o scruple_n be_v determine_v in_o the_o chair_n and_o contend_v for_o earnest_o for_o about_o two_o hundred_o year_n past_a and_o yet_o all_o the_o world_n know_v it_o be_v not_o so_o of_o old_a 14._o lib._n 2._o the_o council_n author_n c._n 14._o for_o we_o know_v when_o the_o question_n begin_v propositi●_n sect._n vltima_fw-la sententia_fw-la &_o ca._n 17._o sect._n tertia_fw-la propositi●_n even_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o pisa_n a_o little_a before_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o now_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o the_o council_n be_v sententia_fw-la ferè_fw-la communis_fw-la nay_o it_o be_v ferè_fw-la de_fw-la fide_fw-la say_v bellarmine_n which_o expression_n of_o his_o show_n plain_o that_o article_n of_o faith_n grow_v in_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o a_o embryo_n to_o be_v perfect_v when_o the_o pope_n shall_v see_v his_o time_n nay_o if_o the_o pope_n definition_n in_o cathedrâ_fw-la be_v infallible_a or_o if_o it_o can_v be_v know_v where_o the_o pope_n do_v define_v in_o cathedrâ_fw-la this_o proposition_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o a_o council_n be_v more_o than_o ferè_fw-la de_fw-la fide_fw-la for_o that_o the_o council_n be_v superior_a be_v a_o heretical_a opinion_n and_o the_o favourer_n of_o it_o heretic_n pius_fw-la quartus_fw-la affirm_v in_o his_o complaint_n against_o lansack_v the_o french_a ambassador_n in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 1562._o a_o d._n 1562._o and_o he_o threaten_v to_o persecute_v and_o chastise_v they_o and_o the_o like_a be_v to_o be_v say_v concern_v that_o fine_a new_a article_n of_o faith_n make_v by_o pope_n paul_n the_o four_o of_o which_o i_o have_v speak_v in_o the_o first_o section_n that_o a_o pope_n can_v be_v bind_v much_o less_o can_v be_v bind_v himself_o viz._n by_o any_o oath_n for_o that_o be_v the_o subject_a matter_n of_o the_o discourse_n the_o number_n of_o the_o seven_o sacrament_n be_v now_o a_o article_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n teach_v in_o their_o catechism_n determine_v in_o their_o council_n preach_v in_o their_o pulpit_n dispute_v for_o against_o their_o adversary_n and_o yet_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n be_v the_o first_o council_n and_o peter_n lombard_n be_v the_o first_o man_n we_o find_v ever_o to_o have_v precise_o fix_v upon_o that_o number_n as_o bellarmine_n probatio_fw-la bellarmine_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr effect_n sacr._n c._n 25._o sect._n secunda_fw-la probatio_fw-la and_o valentia_n etc._n valentia_n in_o thom._n tom_n 4._o disp_n 3._o q._n 6._o punct_a 2._o sect._n tertiò_fw-la objiciunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n sufficient_o acknowledge_v even_o when_o they_o will_v fain_o deny_v it_o here_o i_o may_v instance_n in_o the_o seal_n of_o confession_n which_o as_o they_o have_v at_o rome_n pass_v it_o under_o a_o sacramental_a lock_n and_o key_n and_o found_v upon_o a_o divine_a law_n for_o so_o they_o pretend_v be_v one_o of_o the_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n which_o whole_o depend_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n who_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o this_o and_o many_o other_o article_n be_v compel_v to_o challenge_v a_o strange_a power_n even_o of_o make_v and_o impose_v new_a creed_n or_o of_o quit_v her_o new_a article_n but_o the_o whole_a order_n of_o section_n in_o this_o chapter_n will_v be_v one_o continue_a argument_n of_o this_o particular_a section_n vi._n of_o the_o expurgatory_n indices_fw-la in_o the_o roman_a church_n they_o use_v indirect_a and_o unworthy_a art_n that_o they_o may_v do_v it_o without_o reproach_n and_o discovery_n and_o for_o this_o i_o instance_n in_o the_o whole_a affair_n and_o annex_n of_o their_o expurgatory_n indices_fw-la concern_v which_o three_o thing_n be_v say_v in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o dissuasive_a 1._o that_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n give_v a_o commission_n to_o the_o inquisitor_n to_o purge_v all_o catholic_n author_n but_o with_o a_o clause_n of_o secrecy_n 2._o that_o they_o purge_v the_o indices_fw-la of_o the_o father_n work_n 3._o that_o they_o do_v also_o purge_v the_o work_n of_o the_o father_n themselves_o the_o first_o and_o the_o last_o be_v deny_v by_o they_o that_o write_v against_o the_o dissuasive_a the_o second_o they_o confess_v and_o endeavour_v to_o justify_v but_o how_o well_o will_v appear_v when_o i_o have_v first_o make_v good_a the_o first_o and_o the_o last_o 1._o that_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n give_v a_o clancular_a commission_n to_o the_o inquisitor_n can_v be_v deny_v by_o
be_v apt_a to_o be_v earnest_a in_o their_o persuasion_n and_o overact_v the_o proposition_n and_o from_o be_v true_a as_o he_o suppose_v he_o will_v think_v it_o profitable_a and_o if_o you_o warm_v he_o either_o with_o confidence_n or_o opposition_n he_o quick_o tell_v you_o it_o be_v necessary_a and_o as_o he_o love_v those_o that_o think_v as_o he_o do_v so_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o hate_v they_o that_o do_v not_o and_o then_o secret_o from_o wish_v evil_a to_o he_o he_o be_v apt_a to_o believe_v evil_a will_v come_v to_o he_o and_o that_o it_o be_v just_a it_o shall_v and_o by_o this_o time_n the_o opinion_n be_v troublesome_a and_o put_v other_o man_n upon_o their_o guard_n against_o it_o and_o than_o while_o passion_n reign_v and_o reason_n be_v modest_a and_o patient_a and_o talk_v not_o loud_a like_o a_o storm_n victory_n be_v more_o regard_v than_o truth_n and_o man_n call_v god_n into_o the_o party_n and_o his_o judgement_n be_v use_v for_o argument_n and_o the_o threaten_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v snatch_v up_o in_o haste_n and_o man_n throw_v arrow_n firebrand_n and_o death_n and_o by_o this_o time_n all_o the_o world_n be_v in_o a_o uproar_n all_o this_o and_o a_o thousand_o thing_n more_o the_o english_a protestant_n consider_v deny_v not_o their_o communion_n to_o any_o christian_n who_o desire_v it_o and_o believe_v the_o apostle_n creed_n and_o be_v of_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n they_o hope_v well_o of_o all_o that_o live_v well_o they_o receive_v into_o their_o bosom_n all_o true_a believer_n of_o what_o church_n soever_o and_o for_o they_o that_o err_v they_o instruct_v they_o and_o then_o leave_v they_o to_o their_o liberty_n to_o stand_v or_o fall_v before_o their_o own_o master_n it_o be_v a_o famous_a say_n of_o stephen_n the_o great_a king_n of_o poland_n that_o god_n have_v reserve_v to_o himself_o three_o thing_n 1._o to_o make_v something_o out_o of_o nothing_o 2._o to_o know_v future_a thing_n and_o all_o that_o shall_v be_v hereafter_o 3._o to_o have_v the_o rule_n over_o conscience_n it_o be_v this_o last_o we_o say_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v arrogate_v and_o invade_v 1._o by_o impose_v article_n as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n which_o god_n never_o make_v so_o where_o have_v god_n say_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o every_o humane_a creature_n shall_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o roman_a bishop_n pontifici_fw-la extrav_fw-mi de_fw-fr majorit_fw-fr &_o obedien_fw-mi dicimus_fw-la definimus_fw-la pronunciamus_fw-la absolutè_fw-la necessarium_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la omni_fw-la humanae_fw-la creaturae_fw-la subesse_fw-la romano_n pontifici_fw-la but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v it_o and_o by_o that_o at_o one_o blow_n cut_v off_o from_o heaven_n all_o the_o other_o church_n of_o the_o world_n greek_a armenian_a ethiopian_a russian_a protestant_n which_o be_v a_o act_n so_o contrary_a to_o charity_n to_o the_o hope_n and_o piety_n of_o christian_n so_o dishonourable_a to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n so_o disparage_v to_o the_o justice_n to_o the_o wisdom_n and_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n as_o any_o thing_n which_o can_v be_v say_v where_o have_v it_o be_v say_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o part_n of_o christian_a faith_n to_o believe_v that_o though_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n do_v communicate_v infant_n yet_o they_o do_v it_o without_o any_o opinion_n of_o necesty_n and_o yet_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v determine_v it_o in_o one_o of_o her_o general_a council_n 4_o sess._n 1._o cap._n 4_o as_o a_o thing_n sine_fw-la controversiâ_fw-la credendum_fw-la to_o be_v believe_v without_o doubt_n or_o dispute_v it_o be_v indeed_o the_o first_o time_n that_o this_o be_v make_v a_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n but_o then_o let_v all_o wise_a man_n take_v heed_n how_o they_o ask_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n where_o be_v this_o part_n of_o her_o religion_n before_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n for_o that_o be_v a_o secret_a and_o that_o this_o be_v a_o part_n of_o their_o religion_n i_o suppose_v will_v not_o be_v deny_v when_o a_o general_a council_n have_v determine_v it_o to_o be_v a_o truth_n without_o controversy_n and_o to_o be_v hold_v according_o where_o have_v god_n say_v that_o those_o church_n that_o differ_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o some_o proposition_n can_v confer_v true_a order_n nor_o appoint_v minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o super_fw-la totam_fw-la materiam_fw-la the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v so_o implacable_o angry_a and_o imperious_a with_o the_o church_n of_o the_o protestant_n that_o if_o any_o english_a priest_n turn_v to_o they_o they_o re-ordain_a he_o which_o yet_o themselves_o call_v sacrilegious_a in_o case_n his_o former_a ordination_n be_v valid_a as_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o prove_v it_o be_v not_o there_o be_v neither_o in_o scripture_n nor_o catholic_n tradition_n any_o law_n order_n or_o rule_n touch_v our_o case_n in_o this_o particular_a where_o have_v god_n say_v that_o penance_n be_v a_o sacrament_n or_o that_o without_o confession_n to_o a_o priest_n no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v if_o christ_n do_v not_o institute_v it_o how_o can_v it_o be_v necessary_a and_o if_o he_o do_v institute_v it_o yet_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n ought_v not_o to_o say_v it_o be_v therefore_o necessary_a for_o with_o they_o a_o institution_n be_v not_o a_o command_n though_o christ_n be_v the_o institutor_n and_o if_o institution_n be_v equal_a to_o a_o commandment_n how_o then_o come_v the_o sacrament_n not_o to_o be_v administer_v in_o both_o kind_n when_o it_o be_v confess_v that_o in_o both_o kind_n it_o be_v institute_v 2._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v so_o multiply_v article_n that_o few_o of_o the_o laity_n know_v the_o half_a of_o they_o and_o yet_o impose_v they_o all_o under_o the_o same_o necessity_n and_o if_o in_o any_o one_o of_o they_o a_o man_n make_v a_o doubt_n he_o have_v lose_v all_o faith_n and_o have_v as_o good_a be_v a_o infidel_n for_o the_o church_n authority_n be_v the_o formal_a object_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v the_o only_a reason_n why_o any_o article_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v the_o reason_n be_v the_o same_o in_o all_o thing_n else_o and_o therefore_o you_o may_v no_o more_o deny_v any_o thing_n she_o say_v than_o all_o she_o say_v and_o a_o infidel_n be_v as_o sure_a of_o heaven_n as_o any_o christian_a be_v that_o call_v in_o question_n any_o of_o the_o innumerable_a proposition_n which_o with_o she_o be_v esteem_v de_fw-la fide_fw-la now_o if_o it_o be_v consider_v that_o some_o of_o the_o roman_a doctrine_n be_v a_o state_n of_o temptation_n to_o all_o the_o reason_n of_o mankind_n as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n that_o some_o be_v at_o least_o of_o a_o suspicious_a improbity_n as_o worship_v of_o image_n and_o of_o the_o consecrate_a element_n and_o many_o other_o some_o be_v of_o a_o nice_a and_o curious_a nature_n as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o merit_n of_o condignity_n and_o congruity_n some_o be_v perfect_o of_o humane_a invention_n without_o ground_n of_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n as_o the_o form_n of_o ordination_n absolution_n etc._n etc._n when_o man_n see_v that_o some_o thing_n can_v never_o be_v believe_v hearty_o and_o many_o not_o understand_v full_o and_o more_o not_o remember_v or_o consider_v perfect_o and_o yet_o all_o impose_v upon_o the_o same_o necessity_n and_o as_o good_a believe_v nothing_o as_o not_o every_o thing_n this_o way_n be_v apt_a to_o make_v man_n despise_v all_o religion_n or_o despair_v of_o their_o own_o salvation_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v a_o remedy_n for_o this_o and_o by_o a_o distinction_n undertake_v to_o save_v you_o harmless_a you_o be_v not_o tie_v to_o believe_v all_o with_o a_o explicit_a faith_n it_o suffice_v that_o your_o faith_n be_v implicit_a or_o involve_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v if_o you_o believe_v that_o she_o say_v true_a in_o all_o thing_n you_o need_v inquire_v no_o further_o so_o that_o by_o this_o mean_n the_o authority_n of_o their_o church_n be_v make_v authentic_a for_o that_o be_v the_o first_o and_o last_o of_o the_o design_n and_o you_o be_v teach_v to_o be_v save_v by_o the_o faith_n of_o other_o and_o a_o faith_n be_v preach_v that_o you_o have_v no_o need_n ever_o to_o look_v after_o it_o a_o faith_n of_o which_o you_o know_v nothing_o but_o it_o matter_n not_o as_o long_o as_o other_o do_v but_o than_o it_o be_v also_o a_o faith_n which_o can_v never_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o a_o good_a life_n for_o upon_o ignorance_n nothing_o that_o be_v good_a can_v be_v build_v no_o not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o blind_a obedience_n for_o even_o blind_o to_o obey_v be_v build_v upon_o something_o that_o you_o be_v bid_v explicit_o to_o believe_v viz._n
their_o religion_n by_o this_o and_o so_o great_a a_o scandal_n to_o jew_n and_o turk_n that_o they_o hate_v christianity_n itself_o for_o that_o very_a reason_n it_o be_v a_o strange_a pertinacy_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o retain_v this_o practice_n for_o so_o little_a pretension_n of_o good_a and_o with_o so_o evident_a a_o mischief_n to_o which_o if_o this_o be_v add_v that_o many_o of_o the_o rude_a people_n do_v downright_o worship_v the_o image_n without_o a_o distinction_n or_o scruple_n or_o difference_n and_o that_o for_o aught_o we_o know_v many_o soul_n perish_v by_o such_o practice_n which_o may_v be_v secure_v by_o the_o take_n away_o the_o image_n and_o forbid_v the_o superstition_n i_o for_o my_o part_n can_v imagine_v how_o the_o guide_n of_o soul_n can_v answer_v it_o to_o god_n or_o satisfy_v their_o conscience_n in_o their_o so_o vile_o and_o cheap_o regard_v soul_n and_o permit_v they_o to_o live_v in_o danger_n and_o die_v in_o sin_n for_o no_o spiritual_a good_a which_o can_v accrue_v to_o the_o church_n which_o can_v countervail_v the_o danger_n much_o less_o the_o loss_n of_o one_o soul_n however_o it_o will_v be_v very_o hard_a from_o any_o principle_n of_o christian_a religion_n to_o prove_v it_o be_v a_o damnable_a sin_n not_o to_o worship_v image_n but_o every_o man_n that_o can_v read_v have_v very_o much_o to_o say_v that_o to_o worship_v they_o be_v a_o provocation_n of_o god_n to_o anger_n and_o to_o jealousy_n 6._o thus_o also_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v confess_v that_o it_o be_v more_o safe_a for_o the_o church_n of_o god_n to_o give_v the_o holy_a communion_n in_o both_o kind_n then_o but_o in_o one_o and_o bellarmine_n foolish_a reason_n of_o the_o wine_n stick_v to_o lay_v man_n beard_n be_v as_o ridiculous_a as_o the_o doctrine_n itself_o be_v unreasonable_a and_o if_o they_o will_v shave_v layman_n beard_n as_o they_o do_v the_o clergy_n it_o will_v be_v less_o inconvenience_n than_o what_o they_o now_o feel_v and_o if_o there_o be_v no_o help_n for_o it_o they_o have_v better_o lose_v their_o beard_n than_o lose_v their_o share_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ._n and_o what_o need_n be_v there_o to_o dispute_v such_o uncertain_a and_o unreasonable_a proposition_n as_o that_o christ_n blood_n be_v with_o the_o body_n by_o way_n of_o concomitancy_n as_o if_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o of_o christ_n body_n break_v and_o the_o blood_n pour_v out_o and_o as_o if_o in_o case_n it_o be_v so_o christ_n do_v not_o know_v or_o not_o consider_v it_o but_z for_o all_o that_o institute_v the_o supper_n in_o both_o kind_n and_o what_o more_o be_v get_v by_o the_o host_n alone_o than_o by_o that_o and_o the_o chalice_n too_o and_o what_o can_v be_v answer_v to_o the_o pious_a desire_n of_o so_o many_o nation_n to_o have_v the_o chalice_n restore_v when_o they_o ask_v for_o nothing_o but_o their_o part_n of_o the_o legacy_n which_o christ_n leave_v they_o in_o his_o testament_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o take_v upon_o she_o to_o be_v sole_a executrix_n or_o at_o least_o overseer_n of_o it_o tell_v they_o that_o the_o legacy_n will_v do_v they_o no_o good_a and_o keep_v it_o from_o they_o by_o tell_v they_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a nay_o it_o be_v worse_a than_o so_o for_o when_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n instance_n be_v make_v that_o leave_n may_v be_v give_v to_o such_o as_o desire_v it_o the_o oracle_n be_v utter_v by_o the_o cardinal_n of_o alexandria_n qua●●●_n council_n trident._n lib._n 5._o a._n d._n 1561._o sub_fw-la pio_n qua●●●_n but_o be_v give_v after_o the_o old_a manner_n so_o that_o no_o man_n be_v the_o better_a for_o no_o man_n be_v capable_a of_o receive_v the_o favour_n but_o he_o that_o profess_v he_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o necessary_a and_o then_o there_o can_v be_v no_o great_a reason_n to_o desire_v it_o he_o that_o think_v he_o need_v it_o can_v not_o receive_v it_o and_o he_o that_o find_v no_o want_n of_o it_o in_o all_o reason_n will_v not_o be_v importunate_a for_o it_o and_o then_o he_o shall_v be_v sure_a not_o to_o have_v it_o so_o that_o in_o effect_n there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o person_n deny_v it_o those_o that_o require_v it_o and_o those_o that_o do_v not_o require_v it_o and_o to_o what_o christian_a grace_n to_o refer_v the_o wisdom_n and_o piety_n of_o this_o answer_n i_o can_v yet_o learn_v neither_o can_v i_o yet_o imagine_v why_o the_o cardinal_n s._n angelo_n shall_v call_v give_v the_o cup_n to_o the_o laity_n ibid._n ibid._n a_o give_v they_o a_o cup_n of_o deadly_a poison_n since_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o savour_n of_o life_n and_o not_o of_o death_n and_o as_o the_o french_a ambassador_n reply_v the_o apostle_n who_o do_v give_v it_o be_v not_o impoysoner_n and_o the_o many_o age_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v receive_v it_o with_o very_o great_a emolument_fw-fr and_o spiritual_a comfort_n to_o this_o i_o know_v it_o will_v be_v say_v by_o some_o who_o can_v much_o defend_v their_o church_n in_o the_o thing_n itself_o that_o it_o be_v no_o great_a matter_n and_o if_o all_o thing_n else_o be_v accord_v this_o may_v be_v dispense_v withal_o and_o the_o pope_n can_v give_v leave_n to_o the_o respective_a church_n to_o have_v according_a as_o it_o may_v be_v expedient_a and_o fit_a for_o edification_n but_o this_o will_v not_o serve_v the_o turn_n for_o first_o the_o thing_n itself_o be_v no_o small_a matter_n but_o of_o great_a concernment_n it_o be_v the_o sacramental_a blood_n of_o christ._n the_o holy_a bread_n can_v be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o blood_n and_o if_o christ_n do_v not_o esteem_v it_o as_o necessary_a to_o leave_v a_o sacrament_n of_o his_o blood_n as_o of_o his_o body_n he_o will_v not_o have_v do_v it_o and_o if_o he_o do_v think_v it_o as_o necessary_a certain_o it_o be_v so_o but_o 2._o suppose_v the_o matter_n be_v small_a why_o then_o shall_v a_o schism_n be_v make_v by_o he_o that_o will_v be_v think_v the_o great_a father_n of_o christian_n and_o all_o christendom_n almost_o displease_v and_o offend_v rather_o than_o he_o will_v comply_v with_o their_o desire_n of_o have_v nothing_o but_o what_o christ_n leave_v they_o if_o the_o thing_n be_v but_o little_a why_o do_v they_o take_v a_o course_n to_o make_v it_o as_o they_o suppose_v damnation_n to_o desire_v it_o and_o if_o it_o be_v say_v because_o it_o be_v heresy_n to_o think_v the_o church_n have_v err_v all_o this_o while_n in_o deny_v it_o to_o this_o the_o answer_n will_v be_v easy_a that_o themselves_o who_o do_v deny_v it_o have_v give_v the_o occasion_n and_o not_o they_o who_o do_v desire_v it_o neither_o have_v all_o the_o christian_a church_n deny_v it_o for_o i_o think_v none_o but_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v and_o if_o the_o roman_a church_n by_o grant_v it_o now_o to_o her_o own_o child_n will_v be_v suppose_v to_o have_v err_v in_o deny_v it_o to_o continue_v this_o denial_n will_v not_o cure_v that_o inconvenience_n for_o that_o which_o at_o first_o be_v but_o a_o error_n will_v now_o become_v heresy_n if_o they_o be_v pertinacious_a in_o the_o refusal_n but_o if_o it_o be_v not_o for_o political_a and_o humane_a consideration_n and_o secular_a interest_n there_o will_v be_v little_a question_n but_o that_o it_o will_v be_v safe_a and_o more_o agreeable_a to_o christ_n institution_n and_o the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n and_o the_o primitive_a practice_n to_o grant_v it_o love_o than_o to_o detain_v it_o sacrilegious_o for_o at_o least_o the_o detention_n will_v look_v like_o sacrilege_n and_o the_o grant_v it_o can_v but_o be_v a_o fatherly_a and_o pious_a ministration_n especial_o since_o when_o it_o be_v grant_v all_o party_n be_v please_v and_o no_o man_n authority_n real_a or_o pretend_v be_v question_v but_o whatever_o become_v of_o this_o consideration_n which_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o charitable_a desire_n and_o way_n of_o peace_n with_o our_o adversary_n and_o a_o desire_n to_o win_v they_o by_o our_o not_o intermeddle_v with_o their_o unalterable_a and_o pertinacious_a interest_n yet_o as_o to_o the_o thing_n itself_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o to_o communicate_v in_o both_o kind_n be_v justifiable_a by_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o perpetual_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n for_o many_o age_n which_o thing_n certain_o be_v or_o aught_o to_o be_v the_o great_a rule_n for_o the_o church_n imitation_n and_o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v this_o advantage_n against_o we_o in_o any_o article_n as_o i_o hope_v there_o will_v not_o be_v find_v so_o much_o pertinacy_n among_o we_o as_o to_o resist_v the_o power_n of_o such_o a_o argument_n so_o it_o be_v certain_a there_o
without_o special_a enumeration_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o if_o the_o priest_n pardon_v no_o sin_n but_o those_o which_o be_v enumerate_v the_o penitent_a will_v be_v in_o a_o evil_a condition_n in_o most_o case_n but_o if_o he_o can_v and_o do_v pardon_v those_o which_o be_v forget_v than_o the_o fpecial_a enumeration_n be_v not_o indispensable_o necessary_a for_o it_o be_v a_o strange_a thing_n if_o sin_n shall_v be_v easy_o remit_v for_o be_v forget_v and_o the_o hard_a for_o be_v remember_v there_o be_v in_o the_o gospel_n no_o other_o condition_n mention_v but_o the_o confess_v and_o forsake_v they_o and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o difference_n certain_o he_o who_o out_o of_o carelessness_n of_o spirit_n or_o the_o multitude_n of_o his_o sin_n or_o want_v of_o the_o sharpness_n of_o sorrow_n for_o these_o common_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o it_o forget_v many_o of_o his_o sin_n be_v in_o all_o reason_n further_o from_o pardon_n than_o he_o who_o conscience_n be_v sore_o wound_v can_v forget_v that_o which_o sting_v he_o so_o perpetual_o if_o he_o that_o remember_v most_o because_o he_o be_v most_o penitent_a be_v tie_v to_o a_o more_o severe_a discipline_n than_o he_o that_o remember_v least_o then_o according_a to_o this_o discipline_n the_o worst_a man_n be_v in_o the_o best_a condition_n but_o what_o if_o the_o sinner_n out_o of_o bashfulness_n do_v omit_v to_o enumerate_v some_o sin_n be_v there_o not_o consult_v with_o his_o modesty_n be_v there_o no_o help_n for_o he_o but_o he_o must_v confess_v or_o die_v s._n ambrose_n give_v a_o perfect_a answer_n to_o this_o case_n lavant_n lachrymae_fw-la delictum_fw-la quod_fw-la voce_fw-la pudor_fw-la est_fw-la confiteri_fw-la 22._o in_o lucam_n lib._n 10._o cap._n 22._o &_o veniae_fw-la fletus_fw-la consulunt_fw-la &_o verecundae_fw-la lachrymae_fw-la sine_fw-la horrore_fw-la culpam_fw-la loquuntur_fw-la lachrymae_fw-la crimen_fw-la sine_fw-la offension_n verecundiae_fw-la confitentur_fw-la and_o the_o same_o be_v almost_o in_o word_n affirm_v by_o maximus_n taurinensis_n petri._n homil._n 2._o de_fw-fr poenitentiâ_fw-la petri._n lavat_fw-la lacryma_fw-la delictum_fw-la quod_fw-la voce_fw-la pudor_fw-la est_fw-la confiteri_fw-la lachrymae_fw-la ergo_fw-la verecundiae_fw-la pariter_fw-la consulunt_fw-la &_o saluti_fw-la nec_fw-la erubescunt_fw-la in_o petendo_fw-la &_o impetrant_fw-la in_o rogando_fw-la and_o that_o this_o may_v not_o seem_v a_o propriety_n of_o s._n peter_n repentance_n because_o sacramental_a confession_n be_v not_o yet_o institute_v for_o that_o bellarmine_n offer_v for_o a_o answer_n beside_o that_o sacramental_a confession_n be_v as_o i_o have_v make_v to_o appear_v never_o institute_v either_o then_o or_o since_o then_o in_o scripture_n by_o christ_n or_o by_o his_o apostle_n beside_o this_o i_o say_v s._n ambrose_n apply_v the_o precedent_n of_o s._n peter_n to_o every_o one_o of_o we_o 8._o collat._n 20._o c._n 8._o flevit_fw-la ergo_fw-la amarissimè_fw-la petrus_n flevit_fw-la ut_fw-la lachrymis_fw-la suum_fw-la posset_n lavare_fw-la delictum_fw-la &_o tu_fw-la si_fw-la veniam_fw-la vis_fw-la mereri_fw-la dilue_fw-la culpam_fw-la lachrymis_fw-la tuam_fw-la and_o to_o the_o same_o sense_n also_o be_v that_o of_o cassian_n quod_fw-la si_fw-la verecundiâ_fw-la retrahente_fw-la revelare_fw-la peccata_fw-la coram_fw-la hominibus_fw-la erubescis_fw-la illi_fw-la quem_fw-la latere_fw-la non_fw-la possunt_fw-la confiteri_fw-la ea_fw-la jugi_fw-la supplicatione_n non_fw-la desinas_fw-la ac_fw-la dicere_fw-la tibi_fw-la soli_fw-la peccavi_fw-la &_o malum_fw-la coram_fw-la te_fw-la feci_fw-la qui_fw-la &_o absque_fw-la illius_fw-la verecundiae_fw-la publicatione_n curare_fw-la &_o sine_fw-la improperio_fw-la peccata_fw-la donare_fw-la consuevit_fw-la to_o these_o i_o shall_v add_v a_o pregnant_a testimony_n of_o julianus_n pomerius_fw-la or_o of_o prosper_n de_fw-la vitâ_fw-la contemplativa_fw-la lib._n 2._o cap._n 7._o quod_fw-la si_fw-la ipsi_fw-la sibi_fw-la judices_fw-la fiant_fw-la &_o veluti_fw-la suae_fw-la iniquitatis_fw-la ultores_fw-la hic_fw-la in_o se_fw-la voluntariam_fw-la poenam_fw-la severissimae_fw-la animadversionis_fw-la exerceant_fw-la temporalibus_fw-la poenis_fw-la mutaverint_fw-la aeterna_fw-la supplicia_fw-la &_o lachrymis_fw-la ex_fw-la verâ_fw-la cordis_fw-la compunctione_n fluentibus_fw-la restinguent_fw-la aeterni_fw-la ignis_fw-la incendia_fw-la and_o this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o divers_a learned_a person_n in_o peter_n lombard_n time_n c._n lombard_n se●t_fw-la l._n 4._o d._n 7._o ad_fw-la finem_fw-la lit_fw-fr c._n that_o if_o man_n fear_v to_o confess_v lest_o they_o be_v disgrace_v or_o lest_o other_o shall_v be_v tempt_v by_o their_o evil_a example_n and_o therefore_o conceal_v they_o to_o man_n and_o reveal_v they_o to_o god_n they_o obtain_v pardon_n second_o 2_o 2_o for_o those_o sin_n which_o they_o do_v enumerate_v the_o priest_n by_o they_o can_v make_v a_o true_a judgement_n of_o the_o penitent'_v repentance_n and_o disposition_n to_o amendment_n than_o he_o can_v by_o his_o general_a profession_n of_o his_o true_a and_o deep_a contrition_n and_o such_o other_o humane_a indication_n by_o which_o such_o thing_n be_v signify_v for_o still_o it_o be_v to_o be_v remember_v he_o be_v not_o the_o judge_n of_o the_o sin_n but_o of_o the_o man_n for_o christ_n have_v leave_v no_o rule_n by_o which_o the_o sin_n be_v to_o be_v judge_v no_o penitential_a table_n no_o chancery_n tax_v no_o penitential_a canon_n neither_o do_v his_o apostle_n and_o those_o which_o be_v in_o use_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o they_o be_v vast_o short_a of_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o sin_n so_o they_o be_v very_o vast_o great_a than_o be_v now_o in_o use_n or_o will_v be_v endure_v by_o which_o it_o plain_o enough_o appear_v that_o they_o impose_v penance_n at_o their_o pleasure_n as_o the_o people_n be_v content_a to_o take_v they_o and_o for_o the_o great_a sin_n we_o see_v they_o impose_v ridiculous_a penance_n and_o themselves_o profess_v they_o impose_v but_o a_o part_n of_o their_o penance_n that_o be_v due_a which_o certain_o can_v be_v any_o compliance_n with_o any_o law_n of_o god_n which_o be_v always_o wise_a more_o just_a and_o more_o to_o purpose_n and_o therefore_o to_o exact_v a_o special_a enumeration_n of_o all_o our_o sin_n remember_v to_o enable_v the_o priest_n only_o to_o impose_v a_o part_n of_o penance_n be_v as_o if_o a_o prince_n shall_v raise_v a_o army_n of_o 10000_o man_n to_o suppress_v a_o tumult_n raise_v in_o a_o little_a village_n against_o the_o petty_a constable_n beside_o which_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o have_v a_o old_a rule_n which_o be_v to_o this_o day_n in_o use_n among_o they_o sìtque_fw-la modus_fw-la poenae_fw-la justae_fw-la moderatio_fw-la culpae_fw-la quae_fw-la tanto_fw-la levior_fw-la quanto_fw-la contritio_fw-la major_n and_o therefore_o fortiter_fw-la contritus_fw-la leviter_fw-la plectatur_fw-la he_o that_o be_v great_o sorrowful_a need_v but_o little_a penance_n by_o which_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v that_o the_o penance_n be_v but_o to_o supply_v the_o want_n of_o internal_a sorrow_n which_o the_o priest_n can_v no_o way_n make_v judgement_n of_o but_o by_o such_o sign_n as_o the_o penitent_a be_v please_v to_o give_v he_o to_o what_o purpose_n then_o can_v it_o be_v to_o enumerate_v all_o his_o sin_n which_o he_o can_v do_v with_o a_o little_a sorrow_n or_o a_o great_a one_o with_o attrition_n or_o contrition_n and_o no_o man_n know_v it_o but_o god_n alone_o and_o it_o may_v be_v do_v without_o any_o sorrow_n at_o all_o and_o the_o sorrow_n may_v be_v put_v on_o or_o act_v and_o when_o the_o penance_n be_v impose_v as_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v less_o than_o the_o sin_n so_o it_o may_v be_v perform_v without_o true_a repentance_n and_o therefore_o neither_o be_v the_o impose_v penance_n any_o sufficient_a signification_n of_o what_o the_o priest_n inquire_v after_o and_o because_o every_o deliberate_a sin_n deserve_v more_o than_o the_o big_a penance_n that_o be_v impose_v on_o any_o man_n for_o the_o great_a and_o in_o that_o as_o to_o the_o sin_n itself_o there_o can_v be_v no_o error_n in_o the_o greatness_n of_o it_o it_o follow_v that_o by_o the_o particular_a enumeration_n the_o priest_n can_v be_v help_v to_o make_v his_o judgement_n of_o the_o person_n and_o by_o it_o or_o any_o thing_n else_o he_o can_v never_o equal_o punish_v the_o sin_n therefore_o suppose_v the_o priest_n to_o be_v a_o judge_n the_o necessity_n of_o particular_a confession_n will_v not_o be_v necessary_a especial_o if_o we_o consider_v three_o that_o by_o the_o roman_a doctrine_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o the_o penitent_a shall_v perform_v any_o penance_n he_o may_v defer_v they_o to_o purgatory_n if_o he_o please_v so_o that_o special_a confession_n can_v be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o the_o reason_n pretend_v viz._n that_o the_o priest_n may_v judge_v well_o concern_v impose_v penance_n since_o they_o be_v necessary_a only_o for_o the_o avoid_v purgatory_n and_o not_o for_o the_o avoid_v damnation_n 4._o this_o further_a appear_v in_o the_o case_n of_o baptism_n which_o be_v the_o most_o apparent_a and_o evident_a
shall_v place_v our_o hope_n in_o man._n 3._o tom._n 9_o operum_fw-la aug●st_n scola_n parad._n cap._n 3._o and_o s._n austin_n if_o at_o least_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o scala_fw-la paradisi_fw-la say_v the_o office_n of_o baptise_v the_o lord_n grant_v unto_o many_o but_o the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o remit_v sin_n in_o baptism_n he_o retain_v unto_o himself_o alone_o wherefore_o s._n john_n antonomasticè_fw-la &_o discretiuè_fw-la by_o way_n of_o distinction_n and_o singularity_n affirm_v that_o he_o it_o be_v who_o baptise_n with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o i_o shall_v apply_v this_o to_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o repentance_n by_o the_o word_n of_o s._n cyprian_n bonaevalle●sis_fw-la de_fw-fr operibus_fw-la card●nalibus_fw-la christi_fw-la inter_fw-la cypriani_fw-la opera_fw-la sed_fw-la varius_fw-la arn●l●i_n bonaevalle●sis_fw-la remissio_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la sive_fw-la per_fw-la baptismum_fw-la sive_fw-la per_fw-la alia_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la donetur_fw-la propriè_fw-la spiritûs_fw-la sancti_fw-la est_fw-la &_o ipsi_fw-la soli_fw-la huius_fw-la efficientiae_fw-la privilegium_fw-la manet_fw-la as_o therefore_o the_o bishop_n or_o the_o priest_n can_v give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o a_o repent_a sinner_n so_o he_o can_v give_v he_o pardon_v and_o no_o otherwise_o that_o be_v by_o prayer_n and_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o person_n fit_o dispose_v who_o also_o can_v and_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n without_o any_o such_o ministry_n of_o man_n as_o appear_v in_o s._n peter_n question_n what_o hinder_v these_o man_n to_o be_v baptize_v who_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o well_o as_o we_o and_o it_o be_v do_v every_o day_n and_o every_o hour_n in_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n in_o the_o immission_n and_o visitation_n from_o heaven_n which_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n daily_o receive_v and_o often_o perceive_v and_o feel_v every_o man_n be_v bind_v by_o the_o cord_n of_o his_o own_o sin_n which_o rope_n and_o band_n the_o apostle_n can_v loose_v imitate_v therein_o their_o master_n who_o say_v to_o they_o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v loose_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n solvunt_fw-la autem_fw-la eos_fw-la apostoli_fw-la sermone_fw-la dei_fw-la 14._o lib._n 6._o comment_fw-fr in_o isai._n cap._n 14._o &_o testimoniis_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la &_o exhortatione_n virtutum_fw-la say_v s._n hierom._n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v entrust_v to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n be_v that_o rule_n and_o measure_n by_o which_o god_n will_v judge_v we_o all_o at_o the_o last_o day_n and_o therefore_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o stand_v or_o fall_v we_o be_v bind_v or_o loose_v which_o word_n when_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n dispense_v right_o they_o bound_v or_o loose_v and_o what_o they_o so_o bind_v or_o loose_v on_o earth_n god_n will_v bind_v and_o loose_v in_o heaven_n that_o be_v by_o the_o same_o measure_n he_o will_v judge_v the_o man_n by_o which_o he_o have_v command_v his_o minister_n to_o judge_v they_o by_o that_o be_v they_o preach_v remission_n of_o sin_n to_o the_o penitent_a and_o god_n will_v make_v it_o good_a and_o they_o threaten_v eternal_a death_n to_o the_o impenitent_a and_o god_n will_v inflict_v it_o but_o other_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v than_o what_o have_v be_v already_o instanced_a those_o word_n of_o christ_n prove_v not_o and_o these_o power_n and_o no_o other_o do_v we_o find_v use_v by_o the_o apostle_n 20._o 2_o cor._n 5._o 19_o 20._o to_o we_o say_v s._n paul_n be_v commit_v the_o word_n of_o reconciliation_n now_o than_o we_o be_v ambassador_n for_o christ_n as_o though_o god_n do_v beseech_v you_o by_o we_o we_o pray_v you_o in_o christ_n stead_n be_v you_o reconcile_v to_o god_n christ_n be_v the_o great_a minister_n of_o reconciliation_n we_o be_v his_o ambassador_n to_o the_o people_n to_o that_o purpose_n and_o we_o be_v to_o preach_v to_o they_o and_o to_o exhort_v they_o to_o pray_v they_o and_o to_o pray_v for_o they_o and_o we_o also_o by_o our_o ministry_n reconcile_v they_o and_o we_o pardon_v their_o sin_n for_o god_n have_v set_v we_o over_o the_o people_n to_o that_o purpose_n but_o than_o it_o be_v also_o in_o that_o manner_n that_o god_n set_v the_o priest_n over_o the_o leprous_a 7._o leu._n 13._o 44._o v._o 5._o 7._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o priest_n with_o pollution_n shall_v pollute_v they_o and_o the_o priest_n shall_v cleanse_v he_o that_o be_v shall_v declare_v he_o so_o and_o it_o be_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n that_o god_n set_v the_o prophet_n jeremy_n over_o the_o nation_n 10._o jer._n 1._o 10._o to_o root_v out_o and_o to_o pull_v down_o and_o to_o destroy_v to_o throw_v down_o to_o build_v and_o to_o plant_v that_o be_v by_o put_v his_o word_n into_o his_o mouth_n to_o do_v all_o this_o to_o preach_v all_o this_o to_o promise_v or_o to_o threaten_v respective_o all_o this_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v pardon_v sin_n just_a as_o they_o save_v man_n 16._o 1_o tim._n 4._o 16._o this_o do_v thou_o shall_v save_v thyself_o and_o they_o that_o hear_v thou_o that_o be_v by_o attend_v to_o and_o continue_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o he_o that_o convert_v a_o sinner_n from_o the_o error_n of_o his_o way_n save_v a_o soul_n from_o death_n and_o cover_v a_o multitude_n of_o sin_n 20._o jam._n 5._o 20._o bring_v the_o man_n to_o repentance_n persuade_v he_o to_o turn_v from_o vanity_n to_o the_o live_a god_n thus_o he_o bring_v pardon_n to_o he_o and_o salvation_n and_o if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o a_o layman_n can_v do_v this_o i_o answer_v it_o be_v very_o well_o for_o he_o if_o he_o do_v and_o he_o can_v if_o it_o please_v god_n to_o assist_v he_o but_o the_o ordinary_a ministry_n be_v appoint_v to_o bishop_n and_o priest_n so_o that_o although_o a_o layman_n do_v it_o extraordinary_o that_o can_v be_v no_o prejudice_n to_o the_o ordinary_a power_n of_o the_o key_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o clergy_n which_o be_v but_o a_o ministry_n of_o prayer_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o their_o own_o ferus_fw-la upon_o this_o place_n christ_n in_o this_o word_n show_v how_o and_o to_o what_o use_n he_o at_o this_o time_n give_v they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 20._o john_n 20._o to_o wit_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n neither_o for_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o alone_o sed_fw-la ut_fw-la eundem_fw-la spiritum_fw-la eandemque_fw-la remissionem_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la verbo_fw-la praedicationis_fw-la &_o sacramentis_fw-la verbo_fw-la annexis_fw-la distribuerent_fw-la and_o again_o he_o bring_v in_o christ_n say_v i_o therefore_o choose_v you_o and_o i_o seal_v your_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n unto_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o confirm_v you_o that_o go_v into_o the_o world_n you_o may_v preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o every_o creature_n and_o that_o you_o may_v distribute_v that_o very_a remission_n by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o sacrament_n for_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n be_v general_a and_o indefinite_a and_o they_o be_v comprehensive_a of_o the_o whole_a power_n and_o ministry_n ecclesiastical_a and_o in_o those_o part_n of_o it_o which_o be_v evident_a and_o confess_v viz._n preach_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o baptism_n a_o special_a enumeration_n of_o our_o sin_n be_v neither_o natural_o necessary_a nor_o esteem_v so_o by_o custom_n nor_o make_v so_o by_o virtue_n of_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n therefore_o it_o be_v no_o way_n necessary_a neither_o have_v they_o at_o all_o prove_v it_o so_o by_o scripture_n and_o to_o this_o i_o add_v only_o what_o ambrose_n pelargus_n a_o divine_a of_o the_o elector_n of_o trier_n say_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n te●●io_fw-la hist._n council_n try_v a._n d._n 155._o sub_fw-la julio_n te●●io_fw-la that_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n quorum_fw-la remiseritis_fw-la be_v perhaps_o not_o expound_v by_o any_o father_n for_o a_o institution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n and_o that_o by_o some_o they_o be_v understand_v of_o baptism_n by_o other_o of_o any_o other_o thing_n by_o which_o pardon_n of_o sin_n be_v receive_v but_o since_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n declare_v in_o scripture_n of_o confess_v all_o our_o sin_n to_o a_o priest_n no_o mention_n of_o sacramental_a penance_n or_o confession_n it_o must_v needs_o seem_v strange_a that_o a_o doctrine_n of_o which_o there_o be_v no_o commandment_n in_o scripture_n no_o direction_n for_o the_o manner_n of_o do_v so_o difficult_a a_o work_n no_o office_n or_o officer_n describe_v to_o any_o such_o purpose_n that_o a_o doctrine_n i_o say_v of_o which_o in_o the_o fountain_n of_o salvation_n there_o be_v no_o spring_n shall_v yet_o become_v in_o process_n of_o time_n to_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o salvation_n and_o yet_o for_o preach_v
sive_fw-la homil._n 59_o say_v against_o thou_o only_o have_v i_o sin_v and_o do_v evil_a in_o thy_o sight_n and_o thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o 50._o homil._n 2._o in_o psal._n 50._o i_o do_v not_o say_v tell_v to_o thy_o fellow-servant_n who_o upbraid_v thou_o but_o tell_v they_o to_o god_n who_o heal_v thy_o sin_n and_o 57_o homil._n quod_fw-la peccata_fw-la non_fw-la sint_fw-la evulganda_fw-la vid._n tom_n 57_o that_o after_o the_o abolition_n of_o the_o penitentiary-priest_n nothing_o be_v surrogated_a in_o his_o stead_n but_o pious_a homily_n and_o public_a exhortation_n we_o learn_v from_o those_o word_n of_o he_o we_o do_v not_o bring_v the_o sinner_n into_o the_o midst_n and_o publish_v their_o sin_n but_o have_v propound_v the_o common_a doctrine_n to_o all_o we_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o conscience_n of_o the_o auditor_n that_o out_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v every_o one_o may_v find_v a_o medicine_n fit_v for_o his_o wound_n 5._o homil._n de_fw-fr poenit_fw-la &_o confession_n tom_fw-mi 58._o tom_n 5._o let_v the_o discussion_n of_o thy_o sin_n be_v in_o the_o account_n of_o thy_o conscience_n let_v the_o judgement_n be_v pass_v without_o a_o witness_n 5._o homil._n 68_o tom_n 5._o let_v god_n alone_o see_v thou_o confess_v god_n who_o upbraid_v not_o thy_o sin_n but_o out_o of_o this_o confession_n blot_v they_o out_o have_v thou_o sin_v enter_v into_o the_o church_n say_v unto_o god_n i_o have_v sin_v i_o exact_v nothing_o of_o thou_o but_o that_o alone_a matth._n homil._n 31._o in_o ep._n ad_fw-la hebr._fw-la homil._n 2o_n in_o matth._n the_o same_o he_o say_v in_o many_o other_o place_n now_o against_o so_o many_o so_o clear_a and_o dogmatical_a testimony_n it_o will_v be_v to_o no_o purpose_n to_o say_v that_o s._n chrysostom_n only_o speak_v against_o the_o penitentiary-priest_n set_v over_o the_o public_a penitent_n cor._n homil._n 28._o in_o 1_o cor._n and_o this_o he_o do_v lazaro_n homil._n 21._o add_v pop._n antioch_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d homil._n 4._o de_fw-fr lazaro_n in_o pursuance_n of_o his_o predecessor_n act_v for_o beside_o that_o some_o of_o these_o homily_n be_v write_v before_o s._n chrysostom_n be_v bishop_n viz._n his_o one_o and_o twenty_o homily_n to_o the_o people_n of_o antioch_n and_o the_o four_o homily_n of_o lazarus_n which_o be_v preach_v at_o antioch_n before_o he_o come_v to_o constantinople_n when_o he_o be_v but_o a_o priest_n under_o flavianus_n his_o bishop_n and_o his_o homily_n on_o s._n matthew_n beside_o this_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o he_o not_o only_o speak_v against_o the_o public_a judicial_a penance_n and_o confession_n but_o against_o all_o except_o that_o alone_a which_o be_v make_v to_o god_n allow_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o this_o for_o pardon_n and_o disallow_v the_o necessity_n of_o all_o other_o to_o these_o thing_n bellarmine_n perron_n petrus_n de_fw-fr soto_n vasquez_n valentia_n and_o other_o strive_v to_o find_v out_o answer_v but_o they_o neither_o agree_v together_o neither_o do_v their_o answer_n fit_v the_o testimony_n as_o be_v evident_a to_o they_o that_o compare_v the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o the_o chief_a of_o which_o i_o have_v remark_v in_o pass_v by_o the_o best_a answer_n that_o can_v be_v give_v be_v those_o which_o latinus_n latinius_n and_o petavius_n give_v the_o first_o affirm_v that_o these_o homily_n 1._o be_v not_o s._n chrysostom_n or_o 2._o that_o they_o be_v corrupt_v by_o heretic_n and_o the_o latter_a confess_v they_o be_v his_o but_o blame_v s._n chrysostom_n for_o preach_v such_o thing_n and_o to_o these_o answer_v i_o hope_v i_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o make_v any_o reply_n 31._o in_o 3._o part_n th●_n tom_fw-mi 4_o q._n 90._o a._n 1._o dub_v 3._o n._n 31._o to_o the_o two_o first_o of_o latinus_n vasquez_n have_v answer_v perfect_o and_o to_o that_o of_o petavius_n there_o need_v none_o petavius_n in_o stead_n of_o answer_v make_v himself_o a_o judge_n of_o s._n chrysostom_n i_o suppose_v if_o we_o have_v do_v so_o in_o any_o question_n against_o they_o they_o will_v have_v take_v it_o in_o great_a scorn_n and_o indignation_n and_o therefore_o we_o choose_v to_o follow_v s._n chrysostom_n rather_o than_o master_n petavius_n i_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o the_o roman_a doctor_n do_v bring_v many_o say_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a father_n show_v the_o usefulness_n of_o confession_n to_o a_o priest_n and_o exhort_v and_o press_v man_n to_o it_o but_o their_o art_n be_v notorious_a and_o evident_a and_o what_o according_a to_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n at_o that_o time_n they_o speak_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o exomologesis_fw-la or_o public_a discipline_n that_o these_o doctor_n translate_v to_o the_o private_a confession_n and_o yet_o what_o ever_o we_o bring_v out_o of_o antiquity_n against_o the_o necessity_n of_o confession_n to_o a_o priest_n that_o they_o will_v resolve_o understand_v only_o of_o the_o public_a but_o beside_o what_o have_v be_v say_v to_o every_o of_o the_o particular_n i_o shall_v conclude_v this_o point_n with_o the_o say_n of_o some_o eminent_a man_n of_o their_o own_o who_o have_v make_v the_o same_o observation_n in_o hoc_fw-la labuntur_fw-la theologi_fw-la quidam_fw-la parùm_fw-la attenti_fw-la quòd_fw-la quae_fw-la veteres_fw-la illi_fw-la de_fw-fr hu_o jusmodi_fw-la publicâ_fw-la &_o generali_fw-la confession_n quae_fw-la nihil_fw-la aliud_fw-la erat_fw-la quàm_fw-la signis_fw-la quibusdam_fw-la &_o piaminibus_fw-la ab_fw-la episcopo_fw-la indictis_fw-la se_fw-la peccatorem_fw-la &_o bonorum_fw-la communione_fw-la indignum_fw-la agnoscere_fw-la fabiolae_fw-la in._n s._n hierom._n epist._n ad_fw-la oceanum_n sive_fw-la epitaph_n fabiolae_fw-la trahunt_fw-la ad_fw-la hanc_fw-la occultam_fw-la &_o longè_fw-la diversi_fw-la generis_fw-la so_o erasmus_n and_o b._n rhenanus_fw-la say_v let_v no_o man_n wonder_v that_o tertullian_n speak_v nothing_o of_o the_o secret_a or_o clancular_a confession_n of_o sin_n poeni●_n praefat._n in_o l._n tertul._n de_fw-fr poeni●_n which_o so_o far_o as_o we_o conjecture_v be_v breed_v out_o of_o the_o old_a exomologesis_fw-la by_o the_o unconstrained_a piety_n of_o man_n for_o we_o do_v not_o find_v it_o at_o all_o command_v of_o old_a the_o conclusion_n of_o these_o premise_n be_v this_o that_o the_o old_a ecclesiastic_a discipline_n be_v pass_v into_o desuetude_n and_o indevotion_n the_o latin_a church_n especial_o keep_v up_o some_o little_a break_a plank_n of_o it_o which_o so_o long_o as_o charity_n and_o devotion_n be_v warm_a and_o secular_a interest_n have_v not_o turn_v religion_n into_o art_n do_v in_o some_o good_a measure_n supply_v the_o want_n of_o the_o old_a better_a discipline_n but_o when_o it_o have_v degenerate_v into_o little_a form_n and_o yet_o be_v find_v to_o serve_v great_a end_n of_o power_n wealth_n and_o ambition_n it_o pass_v into_o new_a doctrine_n and_o be_v now_o bold_a to_o pretend_v to_o divine_a institution_n though_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o commandment_n of_o man_n a_o snare_n of_o conscience_n and_o a_o ministry_n of_o humane_a policy_n false_a in_o the_o proposition_n and_o intolerable_a in_o the_o conclusion_n there_o be_v divers_a other_o instance_n reducible_a to_o this_o charge_n and_o especial_o the_o prohibition_n of_o priest_n marriage_n and_o the_o abstinence_n from_o flesh_n at_o certain_a time_n which_o be_v grow_v up_o from_o humane-ordinance_n to_o be_v establish_v doctrine_n that_o be_v to_o be_v urge_v with_o great_a severity_n than_o the_o law_n of_o god_n insomuch_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n permit_v concubinate_a and_o stew_n at_o the_o same_o time_n when_o she_o will_v not_o permit_v chaste_a marriage_n to_o her_o clergy_n and_o for_o abstinence_n from_o flesh_n at_o time_n appoint_v veluti_fw-la parricida_fw-la penè_fw-la dixerim_fw-la rapitur_fw-la ad_fw-la supplicium_fw-la qui_fw-la pro_fw-la piscium_fw-la carnibus_fw-la gustârit_fw-la carnes_z suillas_fw-la 4._o rule_n of_o conscience_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 4._o but_o i_o shall_v not_o now_o insist_v upon_o these_o have_v so_o many_o other_o thing_n to_o say_v and_o especial_o have_v already_o in_o another_o place_n verify_v this_o charge_n against_o they_o in_o these_o instance_n 20._o rule_n 13._o and_o rule_v 19_o and_o 20._o i_o shall_v only_o name_v one_o testimony_n of_o their_o own_o which_o be_v a_o pregnant_a mother_n of_o many_o instance_n canonum_fw-la caus._n 25._o qu._n 1._o c._n violatores_fw-la canonum_fw-la and_o it_o be_v in_o their_o own_o canon_n law_n they_o that_o voluntary_o violate_v the_o canon_n be_v heavy_o judge_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o be_v damn_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o who_o instinct_n they_o be_v dictate_v prodictati_fw-la dictate_v dicati_fw-la prodictati_fw-la for_o they_o do_v not_o incongruous_o seem_v to_o blaspheme_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o a_o little_a after_o such_o a_o presumption_n be_v manifest_o one_o of_o the_o kind_n of_o they_o that_o blaspheme_v against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n now_o if_o the_o law_n of_o their_o
salvandi_fw-la vel_fw-la tenebris_fw-la tantum_fw-la afficiantur_fw-la vel_fw-la expiationis_fw-la igne_fw-la decoquantur_fw-la quidam_fw-la asserunt_fw-la whether_o the_o judgement_n be_v pass_v beside_o the_o low_a hell_n there_o remain_v a_o place_n for_o light_a punishment_n for_o that_o there_o be_v below_z or_o in_o hell_n a_o purgatory_n place_n in_o which_o they_o that_o be_v to_o be_v save_v be_v either_o affect_v a●ficiantur_fw-la invest_v punish_v with_o darkness_n only_o or_o else_o be_v boil_v in_o the_o fire_n of_o expiation_n some_o do_v affirm_v what_o be_v or_o can_v be_v more_o plain_o say_v of_o purgatory_n for_o the_o place_n of_o scripture_n bring_v to_o confirm_v this_o opinion_n be_v such_o which_o relate_v to_o the_o interval_n between_o death_n and_o the_o last_o judgement_n juxta_fw-la illud_fw-la patriarchae_fw-la lugens_fw-la descendum_fw-la ad_fw-la inferos_fw-la &_o illud_fw-la apostoli_fw-la ipse_fw-la autem_fw-la salvus_fw-la erit_fw-la sic_fw-la tamen_fw-la quasi_fw-la per_fw-la ignem_fw-la i_o hope_v the_o roman_a doctor_n will_v not_o deny_v but_o these_o be_v mean_v of_o purgatory_n before_o the_o last_o day_n and_o therefore_o so_o be_v the_o opinion_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o which_o these_o place_n be_v bring_v 2._o by_o post_fw-la judicium_fw-la in_o the_o title_n and_o transacto_fw-la judicio_fw-la in_o the_o chapter_n otho_n mean_v the_o particular_a judgement_n pass_v upon_o every_o one_o at_o their_o death_n which_o he_o in_o a_o few_o line_n after_o call_v terminatis_fw-la in_o judicio_fw-la causis_fw-la singulorum_fw-la 3._o he_o must_v mean_v it_o to_o be_v before_o the_o last_o great_a day_n because_o that_o which_o he_o say_v some_o do_v affirm_v quidam_fw-la asserunt_fw-la be_v that_o those_o which_o be_v salvandi_fw-la to_o be_v save_v hereafter_o be_v either_o in_o darkness_n or_o in_o a_o purgatory_n fire_n which_o therefore_o must_v be_v mean_v of_o the_o interval_n for_o after_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v pass_v and_o the_o book_n shut_v and_o the_o sentence_n pronounce_v none_o can_v be_v save_v that_o be_v not_o then_o acquit_v unless_o origen_n opinion_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o devil_n and_o damn_a soul_n be_v reintroduce_v which_o the_o church_n before_o otho_n many_o age_n have_v explode_v and_o therefore_o so_o good_a and_o great_a a_o person_n will_v not_o have_v think_v that_o fit_a to_o be_v then_o dispute_v and_o it_o be_v not_o then_o a_o question_n nor_o a_o thing_n undetermined_a in_o the_o church_n 4._o whether_o otho_n mean_v it_o of_o a_o purgatory_n before_o or_o after_o the_o day_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n it_o make_v very_o much_o against_o the_o present_a roman_a doctrine_n for_o otho_n apply_v the_o question_n to_o the_o case_n of_o infant_n die_v without_o baptism_n now_o if_o their_o purgatory_n be_v before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n than_o i_o quote_v otho_n according_a to_o my_o own_o sense_n and_o he_o but_o if_o he_o mean_v it_o to_o be_v after_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n than_o the_o limbus_fw-la infantum_fw-la of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v vanish_v for_o the_o scruple_n be_v move_v about_o infant_n quid_fw-la de_fw-la parvulis_fw-la qui_fw-la solo_fw-la originali_fw-la delicto_fw-la tenentur_fw-la fiet_fw-la and_o there_o be_v none_o such_o till_o after_o doom_n day_n so_o that_o let_v it_o be_v as_o it_o will_v the_o roman_a church_n be_v a_o loser_n and_o therefore_o let_v they_o take_v their_o choice_n on_o which_o side_n they_o will_v fall_v but_o now_o after_o s._n augustine_n time_n especial_o in_o the_o time_n of_o s._n gregory_n and_o since_o there_o be_v many_o strange_a story_n tell_v of_o soul_n appear_v after_o death_n and_o tell_v strange_a thing_n of_o their_o torment_n below_o many_o of_o which_o be_v gather_v together_o by_o the_o speculum_fw-la exemplorum_fw-la the_o legend_n of_o lombardy_n and_o other_o some_o of_o they_o be_v note_v by_o the_o dissuasive_a to_o this_o purpose_n to_o show_v that_o in_o the_o time_n when_o these_o story_n be_v tell_v the_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n do_v not_o burn_v clear_a but_o they_o find_v purgatory_n in_o bath_n in_o eve_n of_o house_n in_o frost_n and_o cold_a rain_n upon_o spit_n roast_v like_o pig_n or_o goose_n upon_o piece_n of_o ice_n now_o to_o this_o there_o be_v nothing_o say_v but_o that_o in_o the_o place_n quote_v in_o the_o speculum_fw-la there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n which_o say_v as_o it_o be_v speak_v invidious_o so_o it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n for_o if_o the_o objector_n ever_o have_v read_v the_o distinction_n which_o be_v quote_v throughout_o he_o shall_v have_v find_v the_o whole_a story_n at_o large_a it_o be_v the_o 31._o example_n page_n 205._o col._n 1._o print_v at_o douai_n 1603._o and_o the_o same_o word_n be_v exact_o in_o a_o ancient_a edition_n print_v at_o the_o imperial_a town_n of_o hagenaw_n 1519._o impensis_fw-la johannis_n rynman_n but_o these_o gentleman_n care_v not_o for_o the_o force_n of_o any_o argument_n if_o they_o can_v any_o way_n put_v it_o off_o from_o be_v believe_v upon_o any_o foolish_a pretence_n but_o then_o as_o to_o the_o thing_n itself_o aquavitae_fw-la post_fw-la hoc_fw-la apparuit_fw-la eidem_fw-la presbytero_fw-la columna_fw-la quaedam_fw-la jubaris_fw-la immensi_fw-la cujus_fw-la claritas_fw-la ultra_fw-la communem_fw-la solis_fw-la valentiam_fw-la coruscare_fw-la videbatur_fw-la de_fw-fr coel●_n usque_fw-la ad_fw-la terram_fw-la porrecta_fw-la per_fw-la quam_fw-la anima_fw-la quaedam_fw-la angelico_n ductu_fw-la ad_fw-la sydera_fw-la contendebat_fw-la sciscitante_fw-la verò_fw-la presbytero_fw-la quidnam_fw-la hoc_fw-la esset_fw-la respondit_fw-la alter_fw-la ipsa_fw-la est_fw-la anima_fw-la constantini_n quondam_a judicius_fw-la &_o domini_fw-la turritani_n haec_fw-la autem_fw-la per_fw-la novem_fw-la annos_fw-la ventis_fw-la &_o pluviis_fw-la &_o algoribus_fw-la semper_fw-la exposita_fw-la à_fw-la die_fw-la exitus_fw-la svi_fw-la usque_fw-la nunc_fw-la in_o stillicidi●_n domus_fw-la suae_fw-la constitit_fw-la ibique_fw-la suorum_fw-la excessuum_fw-la poenas_fw-la luit_fw-la sed_fw-la qui_fw-la misericors_fw-la &_o liberalis_fw-la in_o pauperes_fw-la extitit_fw-la &_o judicium_fw-la injuria●_n patientibus_fw-la fecit_fw-la in_fw-la super_fw-la etiam_fw-la de_fw-la malis_fw-la quae_fw-la commisit_fw-la confessa_fw-la &_o poenitens_fw-la à_fw-la corpore_fw-la exivit_fw-la idcircò_fw-la misericordiam_fw-la à_fw-la deo_fw-la consecuta_fw-la hodiernâ_fw-la die_fw-la meretur_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la malis_fw-la liberari_fw-la etc._n etc._n haec_fw-la &_o multa_fw-la alia_fw-la sacerdos_fw-la ille_fw-la vidit_fw-la &_o audivit_fw-la de_fw-la secretis_fw-la alterius_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la though_o learned_a man_n deny_v the_o dialogue_n of_o s._n gregory_n from_o whence_o many_o of_o the_o like_a story_n be_v derive_v to_o be_v his_o as_o possevine_n confess_v and_o melchior_n canus_n though_o a_o little_a timorous_o affirm_v yet_o i_o be_o willing_a to_o admit_v they_o for_o he_o but_o yet_o i_o can_v but_o note_n that_o those_o dialogue_n have_v in_o they_o many_o foolish_a ridiculous_a and_o improbable_a story_n but_o yet_o they_o and_o their_o like_a be_v make_v a_o great_a ground_n of_o purgatory_n but_o then_o the_o right_a also_o may_v be_v do_v to_o s._n gregory_n his_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n can_v consist_v with_o the_o present_a article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n so_o fond_a they_o be_v in_o the_o allege_v of_o authority_n that_o they_o destroy_v their_o own_o hypothesis_n by_o their_o undiscerning_a quotation_n for_o 1._o s._n gregory_n p._n affirm_v that_o which_o be_v perfect_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n 17._o s._n greg._n m._n lib._n 13._o in_o jobum_fw-la c._n 15._o c_o 17._o for_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o fruit_n of_o our_o redemption_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n our_o author_n that_o when_o we_o be_v draw_v from_o our_o dwell_n in_o the_o body_n mox_fw-la forthwith_o we_o be_v lead_v to_o celestial_a reward_n and_o a_o little_a after_o speak_v of_o those_o word_n of_o job_n asserit_fw-la cum_fw-la constat_fw-la quod_fw-la apud_fw-la inferos_fw-la justi_fw-la non_fw-la in_o locupoenalibus_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o superiori_fw-la quietis_fw-la sinu_fw-la tenerentur_fw-la magna_fw-la nobis_fw-la o●oritur_fw-la questio_fw-la quidnam_fw-la sit_fw-la quod_fw-la b._n job_n asserit_fw-la in_o profundissimum_fw-la infernum_fw-la descendunt_fw-la omne_fw-la mea_fw-la he_o say_v thus_o since_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o in_o the_o low_a region_n the_o just_a be_v not_o in_o penal_a place_n but_o be_v hold_v in_o the_o superior_a bosom_n of_o rest_n a_o great_a question_n arise_v what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o bless_a job_n if_o purgatory_n can_v stand_v with_o this_o hypothesis_n of_o s._n gregory_n than_o fire_n and_o water_n can_v be_v reconcile_v this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n gregory_n in_o his_o own_o work_n for_o whether_o the_o dialogue_n under_o his_o name_n be_v his_o or_o no_o i_o shall_v not_o dispute_v but_o if_o i_o be_v study_v to_o do_v honour_n to_o his_o memory_n i_o shall_v never_o admit_v they_o to_o be_v his_o and_o so_o much_o the_o rather_o because_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o dialogue_n contradict_v the_o doctrine_n
of_o his_o commentary_n and_o yet_o even_o the_o purgatory_n which_o be_v in_o the_o dialogue_n be_v unlike_a that_o which_o be_v declare_v at_o basil_n 39_o lib._n 4._o dialog_n c._n 39_o for_o the_o gregorian_a purgatory_n suppose_v only_o a_o expiation_n of_o small_a and_o light_a fault_n as_o immoderate_a laughter_n impertinent_a talk_n 46._o cap._n 46._o which_o nevertheless_o he_o himself_o say_v be_v expiable_a by_o fear_n of_o death_n sacram_fw-la in_o summa_fw-la sacram_fw-la and_o victoria_n and_o jacobus_n de_fw-fr graffis_n say_v be_v to_o be_v take_v away_o by_o beat_v the_o breast_n holy_a water_n 110._o eccles._n n._n 110._o the_o bishop_n blessing_n 10._o decis_fw-la case_z conf●ient_a part_n 1._o lib._n 1._o c._n 6._o n_o 10._o and_o s._n austin_n say_v they_o be_v to_o be_v take_v off_o by_o daily_o say_v the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o therefore_o be_v so_o easy_o so_o ready_o so_o many_o way_n to_o be_v purge_v here_o it_o will_v not_o be_v worth_a establish_v a_o purgatory_n for_o such_o alone_a but_o he_o admit_v not_o of_o any_o remain_a punishment_n due_a to_o great_a sin_n forgive_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ._n but_o concern_v s._n gregory_n i_o shall_v say_v no_o more_o but_o refer_v the_o reader_n to_o the_o apology_n of_o the_o greek_n who_o affirm_v that_o s._n gregory_n admit_v a_o kind_n of_o purgatory_n but_o whether_o allegorical_o or_o no_o or_o think_v so_o real_o they_o know_v not_o but_o what_o he_o say_v be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o by_o way_n of_o dispensation_n and_o as_o it_o be_v constrain_v to_o it_o by_o the_o argument_n of_o those_o who_o will_v have_v all_o sin_n expiable_a after_o death_n against_o who_o he_o can_v not_o so_o likely_a prevail_v if_o he_o have_v say_v that_o none_o be_v and_o therefore_o he_o think_v himself_o force_v to_o go_v a_o middle_a way_n and_o admit_v a_o purgatory_n only_o for_o little_a or_o venial_a sin_n which_o yet_o will_v do_v no_o advantage_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o beside_o all_o this_o s._n gregory_n or_o whoever_o be_v the_o author_n of_o these_o dialogue_n have_v nothing_o definite_a or_o determine_v concern_v the_o time_n manner_n measure_n or_o place_n so_o whole_o new_a be_v this_o doctrine_n then_o that_o it_o have_v not_o get_v any_o shape_n or_o feature_n next_o i_o be_o to_o account_v concern_v the_o greek_n who_o i_o affirm_v always_o to_o have_v differ_v from_o the_o latin_n since_o they_o have_v forge_v this_o new_a doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n in_o the_o roman_a laboratory_n 14._o the_o letter_n pag._n 14._o and_o to_o prove_v something_o of_o this_o i_o affirm_v that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n they_o publish_v a_o apology_n direct_o disapprove_v the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n against_o this_o up_o start_v a_o man_n fierce_a and_o angry_a and_o say_v there_o be_v no_o such_o apology_n publish_v in_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n for_o he_o have_v examine_v it_o all_o over_o and_o can_v find_v no_o such_o apology_n i_o be_o sorry_a for_o the_o gentleman_n loss_n of_o his_o labour_n but_o if_o he_o have_v take_v i_o along_o with_o he_o i_o can_v have_v help_v the_o learned_a man_n this_o apology_n be_v write_v by_o marcus_n metropolitan_a of_o ephesus_n as_o sixtus_n senensis_n confess_v 6._o biblioth_n lib._n 6._o and_o that_o he_o offer_v it_o to_o the_o council_n of_o basil._n 259._o annot._fw-la 259._o that_o it_o be_v give_v and_o read_v to_o the_o deputy_n of_o the_o council_n 186._o lib._n 2._o p._n 186._o june_n 14._o 1438._o be_v attest_v by_o cusanus_fw-la and_o martinus_n crusius_n in_o his_o turco-graecia_n but_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o this_o over-learned_n author_n of_o the_o letter_n miss_v this_o apology_n in_o his_o search_n of_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n for_o this_o be_v not_o the_o only_a material_a thing_n that_o be_v miss_v in_o the_o edition_n of_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n for_o linwood_n that_o great_a and_o excellent_a english_a canonist_n make_v a_o appeal_n in_o that_o council_n and_o prosecute_v it_o with_o effect_n in_o behalf_n of_o king_n henry_n of_o england_n cu_z in_o temporalibus_fw-la non_fw-la recognoscat_fw-la superiorem_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o nothing_o of_o this_o now_o appear_v though_o it_o be_v then_o register_v but_o it_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n to_o forge_v or_o to_o suppress_v act_n of_o council_n but_o beside_o this_o i_o do_v not_o suppose_v he_o will_v have_v be_v so_o indiscreet_a as_o to_o have_v look_v for_o that_o apology_n in_o the_o edition_n of_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n but_o it_o be_v deliver_v to_o the_o council_n by_o the_o greek_n and_o the_o council_n be_v wise_a enough_o not_o to_o keep_v that_o upon_o public_a record_n however_o if_o the_o gentleman_n please_v to_o see_v it_o he_o may_v have_v it_o among_o the_o bookseller_n if_o he_o will_v please_v to_o ask_v for_o the_o apologia_fw-la graecorum_n de_fw-la igne_fw-la purgatorio_fw-la publish_v by_o salmasius_n it_o be_v suppose_v to_o be_v make_v by_o marc_n archbishop_n 93._o p._n 93._o but_o for_o save_v the_o gentleman_n charge_n or_o trouble_v i_o shall_v tell_v he_o a_o few_o word_n out_o of_o that_o apology_n which_o will_v serve_v his_o turn_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n for_o these_o reason_n the_o doctrine_n of_o a_o purgatory_n fire_n be_v to_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n as_o that_o which_o slacken_v the_o endeavour_n of_o the_o diligent_a as_o persuade_v they_o not_o to_o use_v all_o mean_n of_o contention_n to_o be_v purge_v in_o this_o life_n since_o another_o purgation_n be_v expect_v after_o it_o and_o it_o be_v infinite_o to_o be_v wonder_v at_o the_o confidence_n of_o bellarmine_n for_o as_o for_o this_o objector_n sect._n de_fw-fr purgat●rio_fw-la lib._n 1._o c._n 15._o sect._n it_o matter_n not_o so_o much_o that_o he_o shall_v in_o the_o face_n of_o all_o the_o world_n say_v dico_fw-la ad_fw-la secundum_fw-la dico_fw-la that_o the_o greek_a church_n never_o doubt_v of_o purgatory_n whereas_o he_o have_v not_o bring_v one_o single_a true_a and_o pertinent_a testimony_n out_o of_o the_o greek_a father_n for_o the_o roman_a doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n but_o be_v force_v to_o bring_v in_o that_o crude_a allegation_n of_o their_o word_n for_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a which_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n as_o all_o wise_a man_n know_v indeed_o he_o quote_v the_o koran_n for_o purgatory_n mahumetanis_n bellar._n lib._n 1._o c._n 11._o sect._n de_fw-fr mahumetanis_n a_o authentic_a author_n it_o seem_v to_o serve_v such_o a_o end_n but_o beside_o this_o two_o memorable_a person_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n nilus_n archbishop_n of_o thessalonica_n and_o marc_n archbishop_n of_o ephesus_n have_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n write_v against_o the_o roman_a doctrine_n in_o this_o particular_a and_o it_o be_v remarkable_a that_o the_o latin_n be_v and_o be_v so_o put_v to_o it_o to_o prove_v purgatory_n fire_n from_o the_o greek_a father_n that_o they_o have_v forge_v a_o citation_n from_o theodoret_n 3._o theodoret_n in_o 1_o cor._n 3._o which_o be_v not_o in_o he_o at_o all_o but_o be_v first_o cite_v in_o latin_a by_o tho._n aquinas_n either_o out_o of_o his_o own_o head_n or_o cozen_v by_o some_o body_n else_o and_o quote_v so_o by_o bellarmine_n graecis_fw-la bellarmine_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-la purgat_fw-la c._n 5._o sect._n ex_fw-la graecis_fw-la which_o to_o wise_a man_n can_v but_o be_v a_o very_a great_a argument_n of_o the_o weakness_n of_o the_o roman_a cause_n in_o this_o question_n from_o the_o greek_a father_n and_o that_o bellarmine_n see_v it_o but_o yet_o be_v resolve_v to_o run_v through_o it_o and_o outface_v it_o but_o nilus_n take_v notice_n of_o it_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o word_n in_o theodoret_n in_o the_o many_o copy_n of_o his_o work_n which_o they_o have_v in_o greek_a it_o be_v certain_a they_o be_v not_o and_o gagneius_n first_o translate_v they_o into_o greek_a to_o make_v the_o cheat_n more_o prevalent_a but_o in_o that_o translation_n make_v use_v of_o those_o word_n of_o the_o wisdom_n of_o solomon_n 6._o sap._n 3._o v._n 6._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o gold_n in_o the_o furnace_n mean_v it_o of_o the_o affliction_n of_o the_o righteous_a in_o this_o world_n but_o unlucky_o he_o make_v use_v of_o that_o chapter_n in_o the_o first_o verse_n of_o which_o chapter_n it_o be_v say_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o righteous_a be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n and_o no_o torment_n shall_v touch_v they_o which_o be_v a_o testimony_n more_o pregnant_a against_o the_o roman_a purgatory_n than_o all_o that_o they_o can_v bring_v from_o the_o greek_a father_n for_o it_o and_o this_o gentleman_n confute_v the_o dissuasive_a as_o he_o think_v by_o tell_v the_o story_n according_a as_o his_o own_o church_n have_v set_v
they_o please_v but_o they_o can_v tell_v certain_o what_o be_v truth_n but_o then_o as_o for_o peter_n lombard_n himself_o all_o that_o i_o say_v of_o he_o be_v this_o that_o he_o can_v not_o tell_v he_o can_v not_o determine_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o substantial_a change_n or_o no._n if_o in_o his_o after_o discourse_n he_o declare_v that_o the_o change_n be_v of_o substance_n he_o tell_v it_o for_o no_o other_o than_o as_o a_o mere_a opinion_n if_o he_o do_v let_v he_o answer_v for_o that_o not_o i_o for_o that_o he_o can_v not_o determine_v it_o himself_o express_o say_v it_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o eleven_o distinction_n and_o therefore_o these_o gentleman_n will_v better_o have_v consult_v with_o truth_n and_o modesty_n if_o they_o have_v let_v this_o alone_a and_o not_o have_v make_v such_o a_o outcry_n against_o a_o manifest_a truth_n now_o let_v i_o observe_v one_o thing_n which_o will_v be_v of_o great_a use_n in_o this_o whole_a affair_n and_o demonstrate_v the_o change_n of_o this_o doctrine_n these_o three_o opinion_n be_v all_o hold_v by_o catholic_o 18._o innocent_n de_fw-fr offic_n mis._n part_n 3._o cap._n 18._o and_o the_o opinion_n be_v record_v not_o only_o by_o pope_n innocentius_n 3._o but_o in_o the_o gloss_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n itself_o miss_v cap._n cum_fw-la martha_n in_o gloss_n ●●trav_fw-mi de_fw-fr celebr_fw-fr miss_v for_o this_o opinion_n be_v not_o fix_v and_o settle_v nor_o as_o yet_o well_o understand_v but_o still_o dispute_v as_o we_o see_v in_o lombard_n and_o scotus_n and_o although_o they_o all_o agree_v in_o this_o as_o salmeron_n observe_v of_o these_o three_o opinion_n as_o he_o cite_v they_o out_o of_o scotus_n that_o the_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v there_o because_o to_o deny_v this_o be_v against_o the_o faith_n and_o therefore_o this_o be_v then_o enough_o to_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v esteem_v catholic_n because_o they_o deny_v nothing_o which_o be_v then_o against_o the_o faith_n but_o all_o agree_v in_o that_o yet_o now_o the_o case_n be_v otherwise_o for_o whereas_o one_o of_o the_o opinion_n be_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n remain_v and_o another_o opinion_n that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v annihilate_v but_o be_v not_o convert_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n now_o both_o of_o these_o opinion_n be_v make_v heresy_n and_o the_o contrary_a to_o they_o which_o be_v the_o three_o opinion_n pass_v into_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n supra_fw-la vbi_fw-la supra_fw-la quod_fw-la vero_fw-la ibi_fw-la substantia_fw-la panis_fw-la non_fw-la remanet_fw-la jam_fw-la etiam_fw-la ut_fw-la articulus_fw-la fidei_fw-la definitum_fw-la est_fw-la &_o conversionis_fw-la sive_fw-la transubstantiationis_fw-la nomen_fw-la evictum_fw-la so_o salmeron_n now_o in_o peter_n lombard_n time_n if_o they_o who_o believe_v christ_n real_a presence_n be_v good_a catholic_n though_o they_o believe_v no_o transubstantiation_n or_o consubstantiation_n that_o be_v do_v not_o descend_v into_o consideration_n of_o the_o manner_n why_o may_v they_o not_o be_v so_o now_o be_v there_o any_o new_a revelation_n now_o of_o the_o manner_n or_o why_o be_v the_o way_n to_o heaven_n now_o make_v narrow_a than_o in_o lombard_n time_n for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n believe_v according_a to_o one_o of_o these_o opinion_n and_o therefore_o be_v as_o good_a a_o catholic_a church_n as_o rome_n be_v then_o which_o have_v not_o determine_v the_o manner_n nay_o if_o we_o use_v to_o value_v a_o article_n the_o more_o by_o how_o much_o the_o more_o ancient_a it_o be_v certain_o it_o be_v more_o honourable_a that_o we_o shall_v reform_v to_o the_o ancient_a model_n rather_o than_o conform_v to_o the_o new_a however_o this_o be_v also_o plain_o consequent_a to_o this_o discourse_n of_o salmeron_n the_o abettor_n of_o those_o three_o opinion_n some_o of_o they_o do_v deny_v something_o that_o be_v of_o faith_n therefore_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o be_v not_o the_o same_o it_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o peter_n lombard_n last_o this_o also_o be_v to_o be_v remark_v that_o to_o prove_v any_o ancient_a author_n to_o hold_v the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n as_o it_o be_v at_o this_o day_n a_o article_n of_o faith_n at_o rome_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o say_v that_o peter_n lombard_n or_o durand_n or_o scotus_n etc._n etc._n do_v say_v that_o where_o bread_n be_v before_o there_o be_v christ_n body_n now_o for_o they_o may_v say_v that_o and_o more_o and_o yet_o not_o come_v home_o to_o the_o present_a article_n and_o therefore_o e._n w._n do_v argue_v weak_o when_o he_o deny_v lombard_n to_o say_v one_o thing_n viz._n that_o he_o can_v not_o define_v whether_o there_o be_v a_o substantial_a change_n or_o no_o which_o indeed_o he_o speak_v plain_o because_o he_o bring_v he_o say_v something_o as_o if_o he_o be_v resolve_v the_o change_n be_v substantial_a which_o yet_o he_o speak_v but_o obscure_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v this_o question_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v so_o intricate_a and_o involve_v among_o they_o seem_v so_o contrary_a to_o sense_n and_o reason_n and_o do_v so_o much_o violence_n to_o all_o the_o power_n of_o the_o soul_n that_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o at_o first_o the_o doctor_n can_v not_o make_v any_o thing_n distinct_o of_o it_o however_o whatever_o they_o do_v make_v of_o it_o certain_z it_o be_v they_o more_o agree_v with_o the_o present_a church_n of_o england_n than_o with_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n for_o we_o say_v as_o they_o say_v christ_n body_n be_v true_o there_o and_o there_o be_v a_o conversion_n of_o the_o element_n into_o christ_n body_n for_o what_o before_o the_o consecration_n in_o all_o sense_n be_v bread_n be_v after_o consecration_n in_o some_o sense_n christ_n body_n but_o they_o do_v not_o all_o of_o they_o say_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v destroy_v and_o some_o of_o they_o deny_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n which_o whosoever_o shall_v now_o do_v will_v be_v esteem_v no_o roman_a catholic_n 37._o e._n w._n pag._n 37._o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o vain_a procedure_n to_o think_v they_o have_v prove_v their_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n out_o of_o the_o father_n also_o if_o the_o father_n tell_v we_o that_o bread_n be_v change_v out_o of_o his_o nature_n into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o by_o holy_a invocation_n it_o be_v no_o more_o common_a bread_n that_o as_o water_n in_o cana_n of_o galilee_n be_v change_v into_o wine_n so_o in_o the_o evangelist_n wine_n be_v change_v into_o blood_n that_o bread_n be_v only_a bread_n before_o the_o sacramental_a word_n but_o after_o consecration_n be_v make_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n for_o though_o i_o very_o much_o doubt_n all_o these_o thing_n in_o equal_a and_o full_a measure_n can_v be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o father_n yet_o suppose_v they_o be_v yet_o all_o this_o come_v not_o up_o to_o the_o roman_a article_n of_o transubstantiation_n all_o those_o word_n be_v true_a in_o a_o very_a good_a sense_n and_o they_o be_v in_o that_o sense_n believe_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o that_o the_o bread_n be_v no_o more_o bread_n in_o the_o natural_a sense_n and_o that_o it_o be_v natural_o nothing_o but_o the_o natural_a body_n of_o christ_n that_o the_o substance_n of_o one_o be_v pass_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o other_o this_o be_v not_o affirm_v by_o the_o father_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v infer_v from_o the_o former_a proposition_n if_o they_o have_v be_v true_o allege_v and_o therefore_o all_o that_o be_v for_o nothing_o and_o must_v be_v intend_v only_o to_o cousin_n and_o amuse_v the_o reader_n that_o understand_v not_o all_o the_o wind_n of_o this_o labyrinth_n in_o the_o next_o place_n i_o be_o to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o what_o pass_v in_o the_o lateran_n council_n upon_o this_o article_n for_o say_v e._n w._n 37._o pag._n 37._o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v ever_o believe_v in_o the_o church_n though_o more_o full_o and_o explicit_o declare_v in_o the_o lateran_n council_n but_o in_o the_o dissuasive_a it_o be_v say_v 18._o letter_n to_o a_o friend_n pag._n 18._o that_o it_o be_v but_o pretend_v to_o be_v determine_v in_o that_o council_n where_o many_o thing_n indeed_o come_v then_o in_o consultation_n yet_o nothing_o can_v be_v open_o decree_v nothing_o say_v platina_n that_o be_v say_v my_o adversary_n nothing_o concern_v the_o holy_a land_n and_o the_o aid_n to_o be_v raise_v for_o it_o but_o for_o all_o this_o there_o may_v be_v a_o decree_n concern_v transubstantiation_n to_o this_o i_o reply_v that_o it_o be_v as_o true_a that_o nothing_o be_v do_v in_o this_o question_n as_o that_o nothing_o be_v do_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o holy_a war_n for_o one_o be_v as_o much_o
a_o dove_n because_o if_o this_o be_v model_v into_o a_o right_a proposition_n nihil_fw-la supponit_fw-la there_o be_v no_o subject_n in_o it_o for_o it_o can_v in_o this_o case_n be_v say_v this_o dove_n be_v no_o common_a dove_n but_o this_o which_o be_v like_o a_o dove_n be_v not_o a_o common_a dove_n and_o these_o person_n which_o look_v like_o man_n be_v not_o common_a man_n and_o the_o rule_n for_o this_o and_o the_o reason_n too_o be_v non_fw-la entis_fw-la nulla_fw-la sunt_fw-la praedicata_fw-la to_o which_o also_o this_o may_v be_v add_v that_o in_o the_o proposition_n as_o c._n perron_n express_v it_o the_o negation_n be_v not_o the_o adjective_n but_o the_o substantive_a part_n of_o the_o predicate_a it_o be_v no_o common_a dove_n where_o the_o negative_a term_n relate_v to_o the_o dove_n not_o to_o common_a it_o be_v no_o dove_n and_o the_o word_n not_o common_a be_v also_o aequivocal_a and_o as_o it_o can_v signify_v extraordinary_a so_o it_o can_v signify_v natural_a but_o if_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o proposition_n be_v something_o real_a than_o the_o consequent_a be_v good_a as_o if_o you_o bring_v a_o pigeon_n from_o japan_n all_o red_a you_o may_v say_v this_o be_v no_o common_a pigeon_n and_o your_o argument_n be_v still_o good_a therefore_o it_o be_v a_o pigeon_n so_o if_o you_o take_v sugar_a bread_n or_o bread_n make_v of_o indian_a wheat_n you_o say_v this_o be_v no_o common_a bread_n do_v mean_v it_o be_v extraordinary_a or_o unusual_a but_o it_o be_v bread_n still_o and_o so_o if_o it_o be_v say_v this_o bread_n be_v eucharistical_a it_o will_v follow_v right_o therefore_o this_o be_v bread_n for_o in_o this_o case_n the_o predicate_a be_v only_o a_o infinite_a or_o negative_a term_n but_o the_o subject_n be_v suppose_v and_o affirm_v and_o this_o be_v also_o more_o apparent_a if_o the_o proposition_n be_v affirmative_a and_o the_o term_n be_v not_o infinite_a as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o present_a case_n this_o bread_n be_v eucharistical_a i_o have_v now_o i_o suppose_v clear_v the_o word_n of_o justin_n m._n and_o expound_v they_o to_o his_o own_o sense_n and_o the_o truth_n but_o his_o sense_n will_v further_o appear_v in_o other_o word_n which_o i_o principal_o rely_v upon_o in_o this_o quotation_n for_o speak_v that_o of_o the_o prophet_n isai_n panis_n dabitur_fw-la ei_fw-la &_o aqua_fw-la ejus_fw-la fidelis_fw-la he_o have_v these_o word_n it_o appear_v sufficient_o that_o in_o this_o prophecy_n he_o speak_v of_o bread_n which_o our_o lord_n christ_n have_v deliver_v to_o we_o to_o do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o a_o memorial_n that_o he_o be_v make_v a_o body_n for_o they_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o for_o who_o sake_n he_o be_v make_v passable_a and_o of_o the_o cup_n which_o for_o the_o recordation_n of_o his_o blood_n he_o deliver_v to_o they_o to_o do_v that_o be_v give_v thanks_o or_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o justin_n where_o 1._o according_a to_o the_o first_o simplicity_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n he_o treat_v of_o this_o mystery_n according_a to_o the_o style_n of_o the_o evangelist_n and_o s._n paul_n and_o indeed_o of_o our_o bless_a lord_n himself_o command_v all_o this_o whole_a mystery_n to_o be_v do_v in_o memory_n of_o he_o 2._o if_o s._n justin_n have_v mean_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o new_a fabric_n of_o this_o mystery_n he_o must_v have_v say_v 296._o pag._n 296._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o bread_n make_v his_o body_n though_o this_o also_o will_v not_o have_v do_v their_o work_n for_o they_o but_o when_o he_o say_v he_o give_v the_o bread_n only_o for_o the_o remembrance_n of_o his_o be_v make_v a_o body_n the_o bread_n must_v needs_o be_v the_o sign_n figure_n and_o representation_n of_o that_o body_n 3._o still_o he_o call_v it_o bread_n even_o then_o when_o christ_n give_v it_o still_o it_o be_v wine_n when_o the_o eucharist_n be_v make_v when_o the_o faithful_a have_v give_v thanks_o and_o if_o it_o be_v bread_n still_o we_o also_o grant_v it_o to_o be_v christ_n body_n and_o then_o there_o be_v a_o figure_n and_o the_o thing_n figure_v the_o one_o visible_a and_o the_o other_o invisible_a and_o this_o be_v it_o which_o i_o affirm_v to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o justin_n martyr_n pascha_fw-la oratio_fw-la 2._o in_fw-la pascha_fw-la and_o it_o be_v more_o perfect_o explicate_v by_o saint_n greg._n naz._n call_v the_o paschal_n lamb_n a_o figure_n of_o a_o figure_n of_o which_o i_o shall_v yet_o give_v a_o account_n in_o this_o section_n but_o to_o make_v this_o yet_o more_o clear_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n we_o do_v not_o receive_v these_o as_o common_a bread_n or_o common_a drink_n but_o as_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n be_v make_v flesh_n and_o for_o our_o salvation_n have_v flesh_n and_o blood_n so_o be_v we_o teach_v that_o that_o very_a nourishment_n on_o which_o by_o the_o prayer_n of_o his_o word_n thanks_o be_v give_v by_o which_o our_o flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v nourish_v by_o change_n be_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o incarnate_a jesus_n here_o s._n justin_n compare_v the_o consecration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n by_o prayer_n to_o the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n the_o thing_n with_o the_o thing_n to_o show_v it_o be_v not_o common_a bread_n but_o bread_n make_v christ_n body_n he_o compare_v not_o the_o manner_n of_o one_o with_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o other_o as_o cardinal_n perron_n will_v fain_o have_v it_o believe_v observando_fw-la believe_v sic_fw-la solem●●_n loqui_fw-la ficut_fw-la panis_fw-la est_fw-la vita_fw-la corporis_fw-la ita_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la est_fw-la vita_fw-la animae_fw-la non_fw-fr scil_n eundem_fw-la conversionis_fw-la aut_fw-la nutriendi_fw-la modum_fw-la can_v ando_fw-la sed_fw-la similem_fw-la &_o analogicum_fw-la effectum_fw-la ●triusque_fw-la nutrimenti_fw-la observando_fw-la for_o if_o it_o be_v so_o it_o will_v not_o only_o destroy_v a_o article_n of_o christian_a faith_n but_o even_o of_o the_o roman_a too_o for_o if_o the_o change_n be_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n then_o either_o the_o man_n be_v transubstantiate_v into_o god_n or_o else_o the_o bread_n be_v not_o transubstantiate_v into_o christ_n body_n but_o the_o first_o can_v be_v because_o it_o will_v destroy_v the_o hypostatical_a union_n and_o make_v christ_n to_o be_v one_o nature_n as_o well_o as_o one_o person_n but_o for_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o dilemma_n viz._n that_o the_o bread_n be_v not_o transubstantiate_v whether_o it_o be_v true_a or_o false_a it_o can_v be_v affirm_v from_o hence_o and_o therefore_o the_o cardinal_n labour_v to_o no_o purpose_n and_o without_o consideration_n of_o what_o may_v follow_v but_o now_o these_o word_n make_v very_o much_o against_o the_o roman_a hypothesis_n and_o direct_o prove_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o consecrate_a bread_n that_o be_v after_o it_o be_v consecrate_v to_o be_v natural_a nourishment_n of_o the_o body_n and_o therefore_o to_o be_v christ_n body_n only_o spiritual_o and_o sacramental_o unless_o it_o can_v be_v two_o substance_n at_o the_o same_o time_n christ_n body_n and_o bread_n in_o the_o natural_a sense_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n at_o this_o day_n will_v not_o allow_v and_o if_o it_o be_v allow_v it_o will_v follow_v that_o christ_n body_n shall_v be_v transubstantiate_v into_o our_o body_n and_o suffer_v the_o very_o worst_a change_n which_o in_o our_o eat_n and_o digestion_n and_o separation_n happen_v to_o common_a bread_n this_o argument_n rely_v upon_o the_o concurrent_a testimony_n of_o many_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n beside_o justin_n martyr_n 2._o lib._n 4._o c._n 34._o &_o lib._n 5._o c._n 2._o especial_o s._n irenaeus_n and_o certain_o destroy_v the_o whole_a roman_a article_n of_o transubstantiation_n for_o if_o the_o eucharistical_a bread_n nourish_v the_o body_n than_o it_o be_v still_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n for_o accident_n do_v not_o nourish_v and_o quantity_n or_o quality_n be_v not_o the_o subject_n or_o term_v of_o nutrition_n but_o reparation_n of_o substance_n by_o a_o substantial_a change_n of_o one_o into_o another_o but_o of_o this_o enough_o eusebius_n be_v next_o allege_v in_o the_o dissuasive_a but_o his_o word_n though_o pregnant_a and_o full_a of_o proof_n against_o the_o roman_a hypothesis_n be_v by_o all_o the_o contra-scribers_a let_v alone_o l._n a._n l._n only_o one_o of_o they_o say_v that_o the_o place_n of_o the_o quotation_n be_v not_o right_o mark_v for_o the_o first_o three_o chapter_n be_v not_o extant_a well_o but_o the_o word_n be_v and_o the_o last_o chapter_n be_v which_o be_v there_o quote_v and_o to_o the_o 10._o chapter_n the_o printer_n shall_v have_v more_o careful_o attend_v and_o not_o omit_v the_o cypher_n which_o i_o suppose_v he_o will_v if_o he_o have_v foresee_v he_o shall_v
these_o word_n from_o the_o scripture_n adimantus_n propound_v yet_o remember_v not_o only_o there_o but_o also_o here_o concern_v the_o zeal_n of_o god_n he_o so_o blame_v the_o scripture_n that_o he_o add_v that_o which_o be_v command_v by_o our_o lord_n god_n in_o those_o book_n concern_v the_o not_o worship_v of_o image_n as_o if_o for_o nothing_o else_o he_o reprehend_v that_o zeal_n of_o god_n but_o only_o because_o by_o that_o very_a zeal_n we_o be_v forbid_v to_o worship_n image_n therefore_o he_o will_v seem_v to_o favour_v image_n which_o therefore_o they_o do_v that_o they_o may_v reconcile_v the_o good_a will_n of_o the_o pagan_n to_o their_o miserable_a and_o mad_a sect_n mean_v the_o sect_n of_o the_o manichee_n who_o to_o comply_v with_o the_o pagan_n do_v retain_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n and_o now_o the_o three_o testimony_n be_v verify_v and_o though_o this_o be_v a_o unnecessary_a trouble_n to_o i_o and_o i_o fear_v it_o may_v be_v so_o to_o my_o reader_n yet_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v get_v no_o advantage_n but_o this_o that_o in_o s._n augustine_n sense_n that_o which_o romanist_n do_v now_o the_o manichee_n do_v then_o only_o these_o do_v it_o to_o comply_v with_o the_o heathen_n and_o those_o out_o of_o direct_a and_o mere_a superstition_n but_o to_o clear_v this_o point_n in_o s._n augustine_n doctrine_n the_o reader_n may_v please_v to_o read_v his_o 19_o book_n against_o faustus_n the_o manichee_n cap._n 18._o and_o the_o 119._o epistle_n against_o he_o chap._n 12._o where_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o christian_n observe_v that_o which_o the_o jew_n do_v in_o this_o viz._n that_o which_o be_v write_v hear_v o_o israel_n the_o lord_n thy_o god_n be_v one_o god_n thou_o shall_v not_o make_v a_o idol_n to_o thou_o and_o such_o like_a thing_n and_o in_o the_o latter_a place_n he_o affirm_v that_o the_o second_o commandment_n be_v moral_a viz._n that_o all_o of_o the_o decalogue_n be_v so_o but_o only_o the_o four_o i_o add_v a_o three_o as_o pregnant_a as_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n for_o in_o his_o first_o book_n de_fw-fr consensu_fw-la evangelistarum_fw-la speak_v of_o some_o who_o have_v fall_v into_o error_n upon_o occasion_n of_o the_o picture_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o s._n paul_n he_o say_v sic_fw-la nempe_fw-la errare_fw-la meruerunt_fw-la qui_fw-la christum_fw-la &_o apostolos_n ejus_fw-la non_fw-la in_o sanctis_fw-la condicibus_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o pictis_fw-la parietibus_fw-la quaesiverunt_fw-la the_o council_n of_o eliberis_n be_v of_o great_a concern_v in_o this_o question_n and_o do_v great_a effort_n to_o the_o roman_a practice_n 57_o e._n w._n pag._n 57_o e._n w._n take_v notice_n of_o it_o and_o his_o best_a answer_n to_o it_o be_v that_o it_o have_v often_o be_v answer_v already_o he_o say_v true_a it_o have_v be_v answer_v both_o often_o and_o many_o way_n the_o council_n be_v in_o the_o year_n 305._o of_o 19_o bishop_n who_o in_o the_o 36._o canon_n decree_v this_o placuit_fw-la picturas_fw-la in_o ecclesiis_fw-la esse_fw-la non_fw-la debere_fw-la it_o have_v please_v we_o that_o picture_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v in_o church_n that_o be_v the_o decree_n the_o reason_n they_o give_v be_v ne_fw-la quod_fw-la colitur_fw-la &_o adoratur_fw-la in_o parietibus_fw-la depingatur_fw-la lest_o that_o which_o be_v worship_v be_v paint_v on_o the_o wall_n so_o that_o there_o be_v two_o proposition_n 1._o picture_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v in_o church_n 2._o that_o which_o be_v worship_v ought_v not_o to_o be_v paint_v upon_o wall_n 57_o pag._n 57_o e._n w._n have_v a_o very_a learned_a note_n upon_o this_o canon_n mark_v first_o the_o council_n suppose_v worship_n and_o adoration_n due_a to_o picture_n ne_fw-la quod_fw-la colitur_fw-la &_o adoratur_fw-la by_o which_o mark_n e._n w._n confess_v that_o picture_n be_v the_o object_n of_o his_o adoration_n and_o that_o the_o council_n take_v no_o care_n and_o make_v no_o provision_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n who_o be_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v worship_v and_o adore_v in_o church_n &_o illi_fw-la soli_fw-la servy_v but_o only_o be_v good_a husband_n for_o the_o picture_n for_o fear_n 1._o they_o shall_v be_v spoil_v by_o the_o moisture_n of_o the_o wall_n or_o 2._o deface_v by_o the_o heathen_a the_o first_o of_o these_o be_v bellarmine_n the_o latter_a be_v perron_n answer_v but_o too_o childish_a to_o need_v a_o severe_a consideration_n but_o how_o easy_a have_v it_o be_v for_o they_o to_o have_v command_v that_o all_o their_o picture_n shall_v have_v be_v in_o frame_n upon_o board_n or_o cloth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o many_o church_n in_o rome_n and_o other_o place_n 2._o why_o shall_v the_o bishop_n forbid_v picture_n to_o be_v in_o church_n for_o fear_n of_o spoil_v one_o kind_n of_o they_o they_o may_v have_v permit_v other_o though_o not_o these_o 3._o why_o shall_v any_o man_n be_v so_o vain_a as_o to_o think_v that_o in_o that_o age_n in_o which_o the_o christian_n be_v in_o perpetual_a dispute_n against_o the_o heathen_n for_o worship_a picture_n and_o image_n they_o shall_v be_v so_o curious_a to_o preserve_v their_o picture_n and_o reserve_v they_o for_o adoration_n 4._o but_o then_o to_o make_v picture_n to_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o that_o caution_n ne_fw-la quod_fw-la colitur_fw-la &_o adoratur_fw-la and_o not_o to_o suppose_v god_n and_o his_o christ_n to_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o it_o be_v so_o unlike_o the_o religion_n of_o christian_n the_o piety_n of_o those_o age_n the_o oeconomy_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o analogy_n of_o the_o commandment_n that_o it_o betray_v a_o refractory_a and_o heretical_a spirit_n in_o he_o that_o shall_v so_o perverse_o invent_v a_o unreasonable_a commentary_n rather_o than_o yield_v to_o so_o pregnant_a and_o easy_a testimony_n but_o some_o be_v wise_a and_o consider_v that_o the_o council_n take_v not_o care_n that_o picture_n be_v not_o spoil_v but_o that_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o what_o be_v adorable_a be_v not_o there_o paint_v and_o not_o be_v not_o there_o spoil_v the_o not_o paint_v they_o be_v the_o utmost_a of_o their_o design_n not_o the_o preserve_v they_o for_o we_o see_v vast_a number_n of_o they_o every_o where_o paint_v on_o wall_n and_o preserve_v well_o enough_o and_o easy_o repair_v upon_o decay_n therefore_o this_o be_v too_o childish_a to_o blot_v they_o out_o for_o fear_n they_o be_v spoil_v and_o not_o to_o bring_v they_o into_o church_n for_o fear_n they_o be_v take_v out_o agobardus_fw-la bishop_n of_o lion_n above_o 800._o year_n since_o cite_v this_o canon_n in_o a_o book_n of_o he_o which_o he_o write_v de_fw-la picturis_fw-la &_o imaginibus_fw-la which_o be_v publish_v by_o papirius_n massonus_n and_o thus_o illustrate_v it_o recte_fw-la say_v he_o nimirum_fw-la ob_fw-la hujusmodi_fw-la evacuandam_fw-la superstitionem_fw-la ab_fw-la orthodoxis_fw-la patribus_fw-la definitum_fw-la est_fw-la picturas_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la fieri_fw-la non_fw-la debere_fw-la nec_fw-la quod_fw-la eolitur_fw-la &_o adoratur_fw-la in_o parietibus_fw-la depe_v atur_fw-la where_o first_o he_o express_o affirm_v these_o father_n in_o this_o canon_n to_o have_v intend_v only_o root_n up_o this_o superstition_n not_o the_o ridiculous_a preserve_v the_o picture_n so_o it_o be_v understand_v then_o but_o then_o 2._o agobardus_n read_v it_o nec_fw-la not_o ne_fw-la quod_fw-la colitur_fw-la which_o read_v make_v the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o canon_n to_o be_v part_n of_o the_o sanction_n and_o no_o reason_n of_o the_o former_a decree_n picture_n must_v not_o be_v make_v in_o church_n neither_o aught_o that_o to_o be_v paint_v upon_o wall_n which_o be_v worship_v and_o adore_v this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n and_o sentiment_n of_o the_o wise_a and_o good_a man_n above_o 800._o year_n since_o by_o which_o also_o the_o unreasonable_a supposition_n of_o baronius_n that_o the_o canon_n be_v not_o genuine_a be_v plain_o confute_v this_o canon_n not_o be_v only_o in_o all_o copy_n of_o that_o council_n but_o own_a for_o such_o by_o agobardus_n so_o many_o age_n before_o baronius_n and_o so_o many_o age_n after_o the_o council_n and_o he_o be_v yet_o far_o reprove_v by_o cardinal_n perron_n who_o tell_v a_o story_n that_o in_o granada_n in_o memory_n of_o this_o council_n they_o use_v frame_n for_o picture_n and_o paint_v none_o upon_o the_o wall_n at_o this_o day_n it_o seem_v they_o in_o granada_n be_v teach_v to_o understand_v that_o canon_n according_a unto_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o patron_n of_o image_n and_o to_o mistake_v the_o plain_a meaning_n of_o the_o council_n for_o the_o council_n do_v not_o forbid_v only_o to_o paint_v upon_o the_o wall_n for_o that_o according_a to_o the_o common_a read_n be_v but_o accidental_a to_o the_o decree_n but_o the_o council_n command_v that_o no_o picture_n shall_v be_v in_o church_n now-then_a let_v this_o canon_n be_v confront_v with_o the_o council_n